| Play | Key Line | Modern Text | Original Text |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.9 | would stir it up where it wanted, rather than lack it | would stirre it vp where it wanted rather then lack it |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.51 | affect a sorrow than to have't. | affect a sorrow, then to haue------ |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.64 | Rather in power than use, and keep thy friend | Rather in power then vse: and keepe thy friend |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.80 | Than those I shed for him. What was he like? | Then those I shed for him. What was he like? |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.i.157 | your porridge than in your cheek; and your virginity, | your Porredge, then in your cheeke: and your virginity, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.ii.20 | Frank nature, rather curious than in haste, | Franke Nature rather curious then in hast |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.ii.49 | Lies richer in your thoughts than on his tomb; | Lies richer in your thoughts, then on his tombe: |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.5 | past endeavours, for then we wound our modesty, and | past endeuours, for then we wound our Modestie, and |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.38 | Thy marriage, sooner than thy wickedness. | Thy marriage sooner then thy wickednesse. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.74 | And gave this sentence then: | And gaue this sentence then, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.100 | owing her than is paid, and more shall be paid her than | owing her then is paid, and more shall be paid her then |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.102 | Madam, I was very late more near her than I | Madam, I was verie late more neere her then I |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.115 | withal, sithence, in the loss that may happen, it | withall, sithence in the losse that may happen, it |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.130 | Such were our faults, or then we thought them none. | Such were our faults, or then we thought them none, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.159 | I care no more for than I do for heaven, | I care no more for, then I doe for heauen, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.171 | But tell me then, 'tis so; for, look, thy cheeks | But tell me then 'tis so, for looke, thy cheekes |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.186.2 | Then, I confess, | Then I confesse |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.208 | Was both herself and love – O then, give pity | Was both her selfe and loue, O then giue pittie |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.222 | More than they were in note. Amongst the rest | More then they were in note: Amongst the rest, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.230.1 | Haply been absent then. | Happily beene absent then. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW I.iii.238 | More than my father's skill, which was the greatest | More then my Fathers skill, which was the great'st |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.63 | Then here's a man stands that has brought his pardon. | Then heres a man stands that has brought his pardon, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.85 | Than I dare blame my weakness. Will you see her, | Then I dare blame my weakenesse: will you see her? |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.109 | Safer than mine own two, more dear; I have so, | Safer then mine owne two: more deare I haue so, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.125 | My duty then shall pay me for my pains. | My dutie then shall pay me for my paines: |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.i.193 | Then shalt thou give me with thy kingly hand | Then shalt thou giue me with thy kingly hand |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.12 | Of all the learned and authentic fellows – | Of all the learned and authenticke fellowes. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.35 | use to be made than alone the recovery of the King, as | vse to be made, then alone the recou'ry of the king, as |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.59 | My mouth no more were broken than these boys', | My mouth no more were broken then these boyes, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.77 | I had rather be in this choice than throw ames-ace | I had rather be in this choise, then throw / Ames-ace |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.104 | Why, then, young Bertram, take her, she's thy wife. | Why then young Bertram take her shee's thy wife. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.136 | Than our foregoers. The mere word's a slave, | Then our fore-goers: the meere words, a slaue |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.204 | thee a vessel of too great a burden. I have now found | thee a vessell of too great a burthen. I haue now found |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.238 | pity of his age than I would have of – I'll beat him an if | pittie of his age then I would haue of------ Ile beate him, and if |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.260 | honourable personages than the commission of your | honourable personages, then the Commission of your |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iii.263 | Good, very good, it is so then. Good, very | Good, very good, it is so then: good, very |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.iv.48 | Strengthened with what apology you think | Strengthned with what Apologie you thinke |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.5 | Then my dial goes not true: I took this lark for a | Then my Diall goes not true, I tooke this Larke for a |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.9 | I have then sinned against his experience and | I haue then sinn'd against his experience, and |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.38 | it you'll run again rather than suffer question for your | it you'le runne againe, rather then suffer question for your |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.47 | you than you have or will to deserve at my hand, but we | you, then you haue or will to deserue at my hand, but we |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.65 | And rather muse than ask why I entreat you; | And rather muse then aske why I intreate you, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.66 | For my respects are better than they seem, | For my respects are better then they seeme, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW II.v.68 | Greater than shows itself at the first view | Greater then shewes it selfe at the first view, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.52 | We met him thitherward, for thence we came, | We met him thitherward, for thence we came: |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.58 | that I am father to, then call me husband; but in such a | that I am father too, then call me husband: but in such a |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.59 | ‘ then ’ I write a ‘ never.’ | (then) I write a Neuer. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.ii.102 | Then hast thou all again. Poor lord, is't I | Then hast thou all againe: poore Lord, is't I |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.iii.6.2 | Then go thou forth, | Then go thou forth, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vi.17 | None better than to let him fetch off his | None better then to let him fetch off his |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vi.79 | No more than a fish loves water. Is not this a | No more then a fish loues water. Is not this a |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vi.83 | than to do't. | then to doo't. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vii.10 | Is so from word to word, and then you cannot, | Is so from word to word: and then you cannot |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vii.30 | You see it lawful then. It is no more | You see it lawfull then, it is no more, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW III.vii.43.2 | Why then tonight | Why then to night |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.i.22 | two hours in a sleep, and then to return and swear the | two houres in a sleepe, and then to returne & swear the |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.i.94 | Till then I'll keep him dark and safely locked. | Till then Ile keepe him darke and safely lockt. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.11.1 | She then was honest. | She then was honest. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.24 | But take the highest to witness. Then, pray you, tell me: | But take the high'st to witnesse: then pray you tell me, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.36 | Who then recovers. Say thou art mine, and ever | Who then recouers. Say thou art mine, and euer |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.ii.64 | Adieu till then; then, fail not. You have won | Adieu till then, then faile not: you haue wonne |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.26 | trumpeters of our unlawful intents? We shall not then | Trumpeters of our vnlawfull intents? We shall not then |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.40 | What will Count Rossillion do then? Will | What will Count Rossilliondo then? Will |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.79 | They shall be no more than needful there, | They shall bee no more then needfull there, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.80 | if they were more than they can commend. | if they were more then they can commend. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.iii.246 | not keeping of oaths; in breaking 'em he is stronger than | not keeping of oaths, in breaking em he is stronger then |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.v.6 | King than by that red-tailed humble-bee I speak of. | King, then by that red-tail'd humble Bee I speak of. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW IV.v.38 | fisnomy is more hotter in France than there. | fisnomie is more hotter in France then there. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.i.24.1 | Than is his use. | Then is his vse. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.ii.40 | You beg more than ‘ word ’ then. Cox my passion! | You begge more then word then. Cox my passion, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.24 | And deeper than oblivion we do bury | And deeper then obliuion, we do burie |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.30 | Then shall we have a match. I have letters sent me | Then shall we haue a match. I haue letters sent me, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.52 | To a most hideous object. Thence it came | To a most hideous obiect. Thence it came, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.71 | Which better than the first, O dear heaven, bless! | Which better then the first, O deere heauen blesse, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.104 | Than I have in this ring. 'Twas mine, 'twas Helen's, | Then I haue in this Ring. 'Twas mine, 'twas Helens, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.105 | Whoever gave it you; then if you know | Who euer gaue it you: then if you know |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.120 | More than to see this ring. Take him away. | More then to see this Ring. Take him away, |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.181 | Than for to think that I would sink it here. | Then for to thinke that I would sinke it heere. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.184.1 | Than in my thought it lies! | Then in my thought it lies. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.229 | The story then goes false you threw it him | The story then goes false, you threw it him |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.255 | Faith, I know more than I'll speak. | Faith I know more then Ile speake. |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.258 | them as I said; but more than that, he loved her, for | them as I said, but more then that he loued her, for |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.272.1 | Where did you find it then? | Where did you finde it then? |
| All's Well That Ends Well | AW V.iii.336 | Ours be your patience then and yours our parts; | Ours be your patience then, and yours our parts, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.i.17 | Then must thou needs find out new heaven, new earth. | Then must thou needes finde out new Heauen, new Earth. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.17 | Pray then, foresee me one. | Pray then, foresee me one. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.18 | You shall be yet far fairer than you are. | You shall be yet farre fairer then you are. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.24 | You shall be more beloving than beloved. | You shall be more belouing, then beloued. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.33 | O, excellent! I love long life better than figs. | Oh excellent, I loue long life better then Figs. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.35 | Than that which is to approach. | then that which is to approach. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.36 | Then belike my children shall have no | Then belike my Children shall haue no |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.59 | Am I not an inch of fortune better than she? | Am I not an inch of Fortune better then she? |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.61 | better than I, where would you choose it? | better then I: where would you choose it. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.110 | Have power to utter. O, then we bring forth weeds | Haue power to vtter. Oh then we bring forth weeds, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.130 | Ten thousand harms, more than the ills I know, | Ten thousand harmes, more then the illes I know |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.134 | Why, then we kill all our women. We see | Why then we kill all our Women. We see |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.150 | storms and tempests than almanacs can report. This | stormes and Tempests then Almanackes can report. This |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.154 | O, sir, you had then left unseen a wonderful | Oh sir, you had then left vnseene a wonderfull |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.167 | women but Fulvia, then had you indeed a cut, and the | Women but Fuluia, then had you indeede a cut, and the |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.ii.191 | Higher than both in blood and life, stands up | Higher then both in Blood and Life, stands vp |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iii.34 | Then was the time for words. No going then! | Then was the time for words: No going then, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iii.77 | Then bid adieu to me, and say the tears | Then bid adiew to me, and say the teares |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.6 | Than Cleopatra, nor the queen of Ptolemy | Then Cleopatra: nor the Queene of Ptolomy |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.7 | More womanly than he; hardly gave audience, or | More Womanly then he. Hardly gaue audience / Or |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.14 | Rather than purchased, what he cannot change | Rather then purchaste: what he cannot change, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.15 | Than what he chooses. | Then what he chooses. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.55.1 | Than could his war resisted. | Then could his Warre resisted |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.61 | Than savages could suffer. Thou didst drink | Then Sauages could suffer. Thou did'st drinke |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.iv.63 | Which beasts would cough at. Thy palate then did deign | Which Beasts would cough at. Thy pallat thẽ did daine |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.v.42.1 | Mine ear must pluck it thence. | Mine eare must plucke it thence. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC I.v.75 | To say as I said then. But come, away, | To say, as I saide then. But come, away, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.10 | Serves for the matter that is then born in't. | serues for the matter that is then borne in't. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.22 | Murder in healing wounds. Then, noble partners, | Murther in healing wounds. Then Noble Partners, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.32 | Nay then. | Nay then. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.41 | No more than my residing here at Rome | No more then my reciding heere at Rome |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.79 | He fell upon me, ere admitted, then. | he fell vpon me, ere admitted, then: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.94 | And then when poisoned hours had bound me up | And then when poysoned houres had bound me vp |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.115 | Go to, then; your considerate stone. | Go too then: your Considerate stone. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.134 | No worse a husband than the best of men; | No worse a husband then the best of men: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.ii.139 | Would then be nothing. Truths would be tales, | Would then be nothing. Truth's would be tales, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.iii.11 | Would I had never come from thence, nor | Would I had neuer come from thence, nor |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.22 | Then put my tires and mantles on him, whilst | Then put my Tires and Mantles on him, whilst |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.48 | Caesar and he are greater friends than ever. | Caesar, and he, are greater Friends then euer. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.73.2 | Nay, then I'll run. | Nay then Ile runne: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.83 | A meaner than myself; since I myself | A meaner then my selfe: since I my selfe |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.v.90 | I cannot hate thee worser than I do | I cannot hate thee worser then I do, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.20 | Hath made me rig my navy, at whose burden | Hath made me rigge my Nauie. At whose burthen, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.36 | Rid all the sea of pirates; then, to send | Rid all the Sea of Pirats. Then, to send |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.39.3 | Know, then, | Know then |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.51 | That called me timelier than my purpose hither; | That cal'd me timelier then my purpose hither: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.67 | Then so much have I heard. | Then so much haue I heard, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.113 | Then is Caesar and he for ever knit together. | Then is Casar and he, for euer knit together. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.117 | the marriage than the love of the parties. | the Marriage, then the loue of the parties. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vi.124 | Antony. He will to his Egyptian dish again. Then shall | Anthony: he will to his Egyptian dish againe: then shall |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.33 | in till then. | in till then. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.90 | The third part then is drunk. Would it were all, | The third part, then he is drunk: would it were all, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.101.1 | Than drink so much in one. | then drinke so much in one. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.108 | The while I'll place you; then the boy shall sing. | The while, Ile place you, then the Boy shall sing. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC II.vii.121 | Is weaker than the wine, and mine own tongue | Is weaker then the Wine, and mine owne tongue |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.14 | Better to leave undone than by our deed | Better to leaue vndone, then by our deed |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.17 | More in their officer than person. Sossius, | More in their officer, then person. Sossius |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.21 | Who does i'th' wars more than his captain can | Who does i'th'Warres more then his Captaine can, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.24 | Than gain which darkens him. | Then gaine, which darkens him. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.i.35 | He purposeth to Athens; whither, with what haste | He purposeth to Athens, whither with what hast |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iii.20 | She shows a body rather than a life, | She shewes a body, rather then a life, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iii.21.1 | A statue than a breather. | A Statue, then a Breather. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iv.8 | He vented them, most narrow measure lent me; | He vented then most narrow measure: lent me, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.iv.24 | Than yours so branchless. But, as you requested, | Then your so branchlesse. But as you requested, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.v.12 | Then, world, thou hast a pair of chaps, no more; | Then would thou hadst a paire of chaps no more, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.8 | Since then hath made between them. Unto her | Since then hath made betweene them. Vnto her, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.26 | His part o'th' isle. Then does he say he lent me | His part o'th'Isle. Then does he say, he lent me |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.35 | I grant him part; but then in his Armenia, | I grant him part: but then in his Armenia, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.38 | Nor must not then be yielded to in this. | Nor must not then be yeelded to in this. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vi.64.2 | My lord, in Athens. | My Lord, in Athens. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vii.12 | What should not then be spared. He is already | What should not then be spar'd. He is already |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vii.25.1 | Than by the negligent. | Then by the negligent. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.vii.53.1 | We then can do't at land. | We then can doo't at Land. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.x.29 | Ay, are you thereabouts? Why then, good night indeed. | I, are you thereabouts? Why then goodnight indeede. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xi.45 | Well then, sustain me. O! | Well then, sustaine me: Oh. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xii.15 | A private man in Athens. This for him. | A priuate man in Athens: this for him. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.7 | The itch of his affection should not then | The itch of his Affection should not then |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.11 | Than was his loss, to course your flying flags | Then was his losse, to course your flying Flagges, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.15 | The Queen shall then have courtesy, so she | The Queene shall then haue courtesie, / So she |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.53 | Thus then, thou most renowned: Caesar entreats | Thus then thou most renown'd, Casar intreats, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.55.1 | Further than he is Caesar. | Further then he is Casars. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC III.xiii.95.1 | Than with an old one dying. | Then with an old one dying. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.ii.44 | Than death and honour. Let's to supper, come, | Then death, and Honor. Let's to Supper, come, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.iv.15 | More tight at this than thou. Dispatch. O, love, | More tight at this, then thou: Dispatch. O Loue, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.iv.38 | Then Antony – but now. Well, on. | Then Anthony; but now. Well on. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.ix.19 | Nobler than my revolt is infamous, | Nobler then my reuolt is Infamous, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.ix.33 | Come on then; he may recover yet. | Come on then, he may recouer yet. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiii.2 | Than Telamon for his shield; the boar of Thessaly | Then Telamon for his Shield, the Boare of Thessaly |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiii.6.1 | Than greatness going off. | Then greatnesse going off. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.31 | Then in the midst a tearing groan did break | Then in the midd'st a tearing grone did breake |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.34.2 | Dead, then? | Dead then? |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.40 | Heart, once be stronger than thy continent, | Heart, once be stronger then thy Continent, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.49 | Itself with strength. Seal then, and all is done. | It selfe with strength: Seale then and all is done. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.61 | Than she which by her death our Caesar tells | Then she which by her death, our Casar telles |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.67 | Thou then wouldst kill me. Do't; the time is come. | thou then would'st kill me. / Doo't, the time is come: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.78 | Come then; for with a wound I must be cured. | Come then: for with a wound I must be cur'd. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.81 | When I did make thee free, swor'st thou not then | When I did make thee free, swor'st yu not then |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.85 | Turn from me then that noble countenance | Turne from me then that Noble countenance, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.88.2 | Then let it do at once | Then let it do at once |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.94 | Why, there then! Thus I do escape the sorrow | Why there then: / Thus I do escape the sorrow |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.95.2 | Thrice nobler than myself, | Thrice-Nobler then my selfe, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xiv.101 | As to a lover's bed. Come then; and, Eros, | As to a Louers bed. Come then, and Eros, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xv.62 | No better than a sty? O, see, my women, | No better then a Stye? Oh see my women: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xv.79 | Become a dog that's mad; then is it sin | Become a Dogge that's mad: Then is it sinne, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC IV.xv.85 | We'll bury him; and then, what's brave, what's noble, | Wee'l bury him: And then, what's braue, what's Noble, |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.18 | No less beg than a kingdom. If he please | No lesse begge then a Kingdome: If he please |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.63 | These thoughts of horror further than you shall | These thoughts of horror further then you shall |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.109 | He'll lead me, then, in triumph? | Hee'l leade me then in Triumph. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.125 | We will extenuate rather than enforce. | We will extenuate rather then inforce: |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.146 | I had rather seel my lips than to my peril | I had rather seele my lippes, / Then to my perill |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.155 | Than love that's hired! What, goest thou back? Thou shalt | Then loue that's hyr'd? What goest thou backe, yu shalt |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.224.1 | Are stronger than mine eyes. | Are stronger then mine eyes. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.251 | of them no longer than yesterday; a very honest | of them no longer then yesterday, a very honest |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.290 | Come then, and take the last warmth of my lips. | Come then, and take the last warmth of my Lippes. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.318 | I'll mend it, and then play – | Ile mend it, and then play--- |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.338.2 | Poisoned, then. | Poyson'd then. |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.360 | No less in pity than his glory which | No lesse in pitty, then his Glory which |
| Antony and Cleopatra | AC V.ii.363 | And then to Rome. Come, Dolabella, see | And then to Rome. Come, Dolabella, see |
| As You Like It | AYL I.i.29 | What mar you then, sir? | What mar you then sir? |
| As You Like It | AYL I.i.41 | Ay, better than him I am before knows me: I | I, better then him I am before knowes mee: I |
| As You Like It | AYL I.i.74 | I will no further offend you than becomes me | I will no further offend you, then becomes mee |
| As You Like It | AYL I.i.105 | of her uncle than his own daughter, and never two ladies | of her Vncle, then his owne daughter, and neuer two Ladies |
| As You Like It | AYL I.i.154 | yet I know not why – hates nothing more than he. Yet | (yet I know not why) hates nothing more then he: yet |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.2 | Dear Celia, I show more mirth than I am | Deere Cellia; I show more mirth then I am |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.27 | than with safety of a pure blush thou mayst in honour | then with safety of a pure blush, thou maist in honor |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.29 | What shall be our sport then? | What shall be our sport then? |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.72 | By my knavery – if I had it – then I were; | By my knauerie (if I had it) then I were: |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.91 | Then shall we be news-crammed. | Then shal we be newes-cram'd. |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.244.1 | More than your enemies. | More then your enemies. |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.256 | More suits you to conceive than I to speak of. | More suites you to conceiue, then I to speake of. |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.265 | Are dearer than the natural bond of sisters. | Are deerer then the naturall bond of Sisters: |
| As You Like It | AYL I.ii.273 | Hereafter, in a better world than this, | Hereafter in a better world then this, |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.7 | Then there were two cousins laid up, when the | Then there were two Cosens laid vp, when the |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.22 | O, they take the part of a better wrestler than | O they take the part of a better wrastler then |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.48 | As I do trust I am not – then, dear uncle, | (As I doe trust I am not) then deere Vncle, |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.62 | Then, good my liege, mistake me not so much | Then good my Leige, mistake me not so much, |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.67 | I did not then entreat to have her stay; | I did not then intreat to haue her stay, |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.80 | When she is gone. Then open not thy lips: | When she is gone: then open not thy lips |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.83 | Pronounce that sentence then on me, my liege, | Pronounce that sentence then on me my Leige, |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.90 | I charge thee, be not thou more grieved than I am. | I charge thee be not thou more grieu'd then I am. |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.94 | No, hath not? Rosalind lacks then the love | No, hath not? Rosaline lacks then the loue |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.108 | Beauty provoketh thieves sooner than gold. | Beautie prouoketh theeues sooner then gold. |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.113 | Because that I am more than common tall, | Because that I am more then common tall, |
| As You Like It | AYL I.iii.122 | I'll have no worse a name than Jove's own page, | Ile haue no worse a name then Ioues owne Page, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.i.3 | Than that of painted pomp? Are not these woods | Then that of painted pompe? Are not these woods |
| As You Like It | AYL II.i.4 | More free from peril than the envious court? | More free from perill then the enuious Court? |
| As You Like It | AYL II.i.28 | Than doth your brother that hath banished you. | Then doth your brother that hath banish'd you: |
| As You Like It | AYL II.i.49 | To that which had too much.’ Then, being there alone, | To that which had too must: then being there alone, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.i.68 | For then he's full of matter. | For then he's full of matter. |
| As You Like It | AYL II.iii.76 | Than to die well, and not my master's debtor. | Then to die well, and not my Masters debter. |
| As You Like It | AYL II.iv.10 | than bear you: yet I should bear no cross if I did bear | then beare you: yet I should beare no crosse if I did beare |
| As You Like It | AYL II.iv.29 | O, thou didst then never love so heartily. | Oh thou didst then neuer loue so hartily, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.iv.52 | Thou speakest wiser than thou art ware of. | Thou speak'st wiser then thou art ware of. |
| As You Like It | AYL II.iv.73 | And wish, for her sake more than for mine own, | And wish for her sake more then for mine owne, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.v.21 | More at your request than to please myself. | More at your request, then to please my selfe. |
| As You Like It | AYL II.v.22 | Well then, if ever I thank any man, I'll thank you; | Well then, if euer I thanke any man, Ile thanke you: |
| As You Like It | AYL II.v.23 | but that they call ‘ compliment ’ is like th' encounter of | but that they cal complement is like th'encounter of |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vi.8 | nearer death than thy powers. (Raising him) For my sake | neerer death, then thy powers. / For my sake |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.20 | And then he drew a dial from his poke, | And then he drew a diall from his poake, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.27 | And then from hour to hour we rot, and rot, | And then from houre to houre, we rot, and rot, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.83 | There then, how then, what then? Let me see wherein | There then, how then, what then, let me see wherein |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.85 | Then he hath wronged himself; if he be free, | Then he hath wrong'd himselfe: if he be free, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.86 | Why then my taxing like a wild goose flies, | why then my taxing like a wild-goose flies |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.104 | More than your force move us to gentleness. | more then your force / Moue vs to gentlenesse. |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.128 | Then but forbear your food a little while | Then but forbeare your food a little while: |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.139 | Presents more woeful pageants than the scene | Presents more wofull Pageants then the Sceane |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.146 | Then, the whining schoolboy, with his satchel | Then, the whining Schoole-boy with his Satchell |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.148 | Unwillingly to school; and then the lover, | Vnwillingly to schoole. And then the Louer, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.150 | Made to his mistress' eyebrow; then, a soldier, | Made to his Mistresse eye-brow. Then, a Soldier, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.154 | Even in the cannon's mouth; and then, the justice, | Euen in the Canons mouth: And then, the Iustice |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.168 | Welcome. Set down your venerable burden, | Welcome: set downe your venerable burthen, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.183 | Then hey-ho, the holly, | The heigh ho, the holly, |
| As You Like It | AYL II.vii.193 | Then hey-ho, the holly, | |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.33 | Then thou art damned. | Then thou art damn'd. |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.40 | manners, then thy manners must be wicked, and wickedness | maners, then thy manners must be wicked, and wickednes |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.64 | wise and perpend: civet is of a baser birth than tar, the | wise and perpend: Ciuet is of a baser birth then Tarre, the |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.104 | Then to cart with Rosalind. | then to cart with Rosalinde. |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.113 | I'll graff it with you, and then I shall graff | Ile graffe it with you, and then I shall graffe |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.114 | it with a medlar; then it will be the earliest fruit | it with a Medler: then it will be the earliest fruit |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.161 | some of them had in them more feet than the verses | some of them had in them more feete then the Verses |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.220 | To say ‘ ay ’ and ‘ no ’ to these particulars is more than to | to say I and no, to these particulars, is more then to |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.240 | I would sing my song without a burden. Thou | I would sing my song without a burthen, thou |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.294 | Then there is no true lover in the forest, else | Then there is no true Louer in the Forrest, else |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.312 | feels no pain, the one lacking the burden of lean and | feeles no paine: the one lacking the burthen of leane and |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.313 | wasteful learning, the other knowing no burden of | wasteful Learning; the other knowing no burthen of |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.321 | between term and term, and then they perceive not how | betweene Terme and Terme, and then they perceiue not how |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.329 | Your accent is something finer than you could | Your accent is something finer, then you could |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.363 | Then your hose should be ungartered, your bonnet | then your hose should be vngarter'd, your bonnet |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.368 | than seeming the lover of any other. | then seeming the Louer of any other. |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.373 | than to confess she does: that is one of the points in the | then to confesse she do's: that is one of the points, in the |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.397 | would now like him, now loathe him; then entertain | would now like him, now loath him: then entertaine |
| As You Like It | AYL III.ii.398 | him, then forswear him; now weep for him, then spit | him, then forswear him: now weepe for him, then spit |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.8 | O knowledge ill-inhabited, worse than Jove | O knowledge ill inhabited, worse then Ioue |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.12 | Understanding, it strikes a man more dead than a great | vnderstanding: it strikes a man more dead then a great |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.20 | Do you wish then that the gods had made me | Do you wish then that the Gods had made me |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.54 | town is more worthier than a village, so is the forehead | Towne is more worthier then a village, so is the forehead |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.55 | of a married man more honourable than the bare brow | of a married man, more honourable then the bare brow |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.56 | of a bachelor; and by how much defence is better than | of a Batcheller: and by how much defence is better then |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.57 | no skill, by so much is a horn more precious than to | no skill, by so much is a horne more precious then to |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.79 | wainscot; then one of you will prove a shrunk panel and, | Wainscot, then one of you wil proue a shrunke pannell, and |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iii.82 | be married of him than of another, for he is not like to | bee married of him then of another, for he is not like to |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iv.7 | Something browner than Judas's. Marry, his | Something browner then Iudasses: / Marrie his |
| As You Like It | AYL III.iv.28 | stronger than the word of a tapster; they are both the | stronger then the word of a Tapster, they are both the |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.7 | Than he that dies and lives by bloody drops? | Then he that dies and liues by bloody drops? |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.30 | Then shall you know the wounds invisible | Then shall you know the wouuds inuisible |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.39 | Than without candle may go dark to bed – | Then without Candle may goe darke to bed: |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.42 | I see no more in you than in the ordinary | I see no more in you then in the ordinary |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.52 | Than she a woman. 'Tis such fools as you | Then she a woman. 'Tis such fooles as you |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.56 | Than any of her lineaments can show her. | Then any of her lineaments can show her: |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.65 | I had rather hear you chide than this man woo. | I had rather here you chide, then this man wooe. |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.73 | For I am falser than vows made in wine. | For I am falser then vowes made in wine: |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.98 | Than thine own gladness that thou art employed. | Then thine owne gladnesse, that thou art employd. |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.103 | That the main harvest reaps. Loose now and then | That the maine haruest reapes: loose now and then |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.116 | Is his complexion; and faster than his tongue | Is his complexion: and faster then his tongue |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.122 | Than that mixed in his cheek; 'twas just the difference | Then that mixt in his cheeke: 'twas iust the difference |
| As You Like It | AYL III.v.128 | I have more cause to hate him than to love him, | Haue more cause to hate him then to loue him, |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.4 | I am so: I do love it better than laughing. | I am so: I doe loue it better then laughing. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.7 | modern censure worse than drunkards. | moderne censure, worse then drunkards. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.9 | Why then, 'tis good to be a post. | Why then 'tis good to be a poste. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.21 | see other men's; then, to have seen much and to have | see other mens; then to haue seene much, and to haue |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.25 | rather have a fool to make me merry than experience to | rather haue a foole to make me merrie, then experience to |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.28 | Nay then, God buy you, an you talk in blank verse. | Nay then God buy you, and you talke in blanke verse. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.50 | than you make a woman. Besides he brings his destiny | then you make a woman: besides, he brings his destinie |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.60 | of a better leer than you. | of a better leere then you. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.72 | Then she puts you to entreaty, and there | Then she puts you to entreatie, and there |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.77 | or I should think my honesty ranker than my wit. | or I should thinke my honestie ranker then my wit. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.84 | Then, in mine own person, I die. | Then in mine owne person, I die. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.104 | Then love me, Rosalind. | Then loue me Rosalind. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.112 | Why then, can one desire too much of a good | Why then, can one desire too much of a good |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.124 | Then you must say ‘ I take thee, Rosalind, for | Then you must say, I take thee Rosalind for |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.139 | of thee than a Barbary cock-pigeon over his hen, more | of thee, then a Barbary cocke-pidgeon ouer his hen, more |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.140 | clamorous than a parrot against rain, more new-fangled | clamorous then a Parrat against raine, more new-fangled |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.141 | than an ape, more giddy in my desires than a monkey; | then an ape, more giddy in my desires, then a monkey: |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.i.182 | With no less religion than if thou wert indeed | With no lesse religion, then if thou wert indeed |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.ii.12 | Then sing him home, the rest shall bear | Then sing him home, the rest shall beare |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.ii.13 | This burden. | this burthen; |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.37 | Than in their countenance. Will you hear the letter? | Then in their countenance: will you heare the letter? |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.56 | How then might your prayers move? | How then might your praiers moue? |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.64 | And then I'll study how to die. | And then Ile studie how to die. |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.85 | Then should I know you by description. | Then should I know you by description, |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.89 | And browner than her brother'. Are not you | And browner then her brother: are not you |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.129 | But kindness, nobler ever than revenge, | But kindnesse, nobler euer then reuenge, |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.130 | And nature, stronger than his just occasion, | And Nature stronger then his iust occasion, |
| As You Like It | AYL IV.iii.172 | Well then, take a good heart, and counterfeit to | Well then, take a good heart, and counterfeit to |
| As You Like It | AYL V.i.31 | man knows himself to be a fool.’ The heathen philosopher, | knowes himselfe to be a Foole. The Heathen Philosopher, |
| As You Like It | AYL V.i.39 | Then learn this of me. To have is to have. | Then learne this of me, To haue, is to haue. |
| As You Like It | AYL V.ii.27 | Ay, and greater wonders than that. | I, and greater wonders then that. |
| As You Like It | AYL V.ii.46 | Why, then, tomorrow I cannot serve your | Why then to morrow, I cannot serue your |
| As You Like It | AYL V.ii.49 | I will weary you then no longer with idle | I will wearie you then no longer with idle |
| As You Like It | AYL V.ii.50 | talking. Know of me then, for now I speak to some | talking. Know of me then (for now I speake to some |
| As You Like It | AYL V.ii.54 | are; neither do I labour for a greater esteem than may | are: neither do I labor for a greater esteeme then may |
| As You Like It | AYL V.ii.56 | yourself good, and not to grace me. Believe then, if you | your selfe good, and not to grace me. Beleeue then, if you |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.82 | I durst go no further than the Lie Circumstantial, | I durst go no further then the lye circumstantial: |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.98 | then I said so;’ and they shook hands and swore | then I saide so: and they shooke hands, and swore |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.105 | Then is there mirth in heaven, | Then is there mirth in heauen, |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.118 | Why then, my love adieu! | why then my loue adieu |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.141 | High wedlock then be honoured; | High wedlock then be honored: |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.190 | I am for other than for dancing measures. | I am for other, then for dancing meazures. |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.197 | but it is no more unhandsome than to see the lord the | but it is no more vnhandsome, then to see the Lord the |
| As You Like It | AYL V.iv.202 | I in, then, that am neither a good epilogue nor cannot | I in then, that am neither a good Epilogue, nor cannot |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.33 | Than I to speak my griefs unspeakable. | Then I to speake my griefes vnspeakeable: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.56 | Of such a burden male, twins both alike. | Of such a burthen Male, twins both alike: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.78 | And left the ship, then sinking-ripe, to us. | And left the ship then sinking ripe to vs. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.i.155 | And live. If no, then thou art doomed to die. | And liue: if no, then thou art doom'd to die: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.14 | And then return and sleep within mine inn; | And then returne and sleepe within mine Inne, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.23 | And then go to my inn and dine with me? | And then goe to my Inne and dine with me? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.30 | Farewell till then. I will go lose myself | Farewell till then: I will goe loose my selfe, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE I.ii.69 | Reserve them till a merrier hour than this. | Reserue them till a merrier houre then this: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.10 | Why should their liberty than ours be more? | Why should their libertie then ours be more? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.23 | Of more pre-eminence than fish and fowls, | Of more preheminence then fish and fowles, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.25 | Then let your will attend on their accords. | Then let your will attend on their accords. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.90 | From my poor cheek? Then he hath wasted it. | From my poore cheeke? then he hath wasted it. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.93 | Unkindness blunts it more than marble hard. | Vnkindnesse blunts it more then marble hard. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.i.97 | By him not ruined? Then is he the ground | By him not ruin'd? Then is he the ground |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.46 | Why, first: for flouting me; and then wherefore: | Why first for flowting me, and then wherefore, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.62 | Well, sir, then 'twill be | Well sir, then 'twill be |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.89 | man hath more hair than wit. | man hath more haire then wit. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.100 | Sure ones, then. | Sure ones then. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.103 | Certain ones, then. | Certaine ones then. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.129 | That thou art then estranged from thyself? | That thou art then estranged from thy selfe? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.132 | Am better than thy dear self's better part. | Am better then thy deere selfes better part. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.136 | And take unmingled thence that drop again | And take vnmingled thence that drop againe |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.154 | Keep then fair league and truce with thy true bed, | Keepe then faire league and truce with thy true bed, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE II.ii.175 | How can she thus then call us by our names? – | How can she thus then call vs by our names? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.6 | Then for her wealth's sake use her with more kindness; | Then for her wealths-sake vse her with more kindnesse: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.25 | Then, gentle brother, get you in again. | Then gentle brother get you in againe; |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.32 | Than our earth's wonder, more than earth divine. | Then our earths wonder, more then earth diuine. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.40 | Transform me, then, and to your power I'll yield. | Transforme me then, and to your powre Ile yeeld. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.41 | But if that I am I, then well I know | But if that I am I, then well I know, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.103 | she'll burn a week longer than the whole world. | she'l burne a weeke longer then the whole World. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.117 | Then she bears some | Then she beares some |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.120 | than from hip to hip. She is spherical, like a globe. I | then from hippe o hippe: she is sphericall, like a globe: I |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.183 | And then receive my money for the chain. | And then receiue my money for the chaine. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE III.ii.193 | If any ship put out, then straight away! | If any ship put out, then straight away. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.i.31 | Than I stand debted to this gentleman. | Then I stand debted to this Gentleman, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.i.40 | Then you will bring the chain to her yourself. | Then you will bring the Chaine to her your selfe. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.i.88 | And then she bears away. Our fraughtage, sir, | And then sir she beares away. Our fraughtage sir, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.9 | Then swore he that he was a stranger here. |
Then swore he that he was a stranger heere. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.11.1 | Then pleaded I for you. |
Then pleaded I for you. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.15 | First he did praise my beauty, then my speech. |
First, he did praise my beautie, then my speech. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.23 | Who would be jealous, then, of such a one? |
Who would be iealous then of such a one? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.25 | Ah, but I think him better than I say, |
Ah but I thinke him better then I say: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.32 | No. He's in Tartar limbo, worse than hell. |
No, he's in Tartar limbo, worse then hell: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.ii.57 | Time is a very bankrupt, and owes more than he's worth to season. |
Time is a verie bankerout, and owes more then he's worth to
season. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iii.27 | do more exploits with his mace than a morris-pike. | doe more exploits with his Mace, then a Moris Pike. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iii.39 | and then were you hindered by the sergeant to tarry for | and then were you hindred by the Serieant to tarry for |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iii.65 | Avoid then, fiend. What tellest thou me of supping? | Auoid then fiend, what tel'st thou me of supping? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iv.74 | And did not I in rage depart from thence? | And did not I in rage depart from thence? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE IV.iv.147 | Come to the Centaur. Fetch our stuff from thence. | Come to the Centaur, fetch our stuffe from thence: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.70 | Poisons more deadly than a mad dog's tooth. | Poisons more deadly then a mad dogges tooth. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.85 | The consequence is, then, thy jealous fits | The consequence is then, thy iealous fits |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.93 | Then let your servants bring my husband forth. | Then let your seruants bring my husband forth |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.143 | By rushing in their houses, bearing thence | By rushing in their houses: bearing thence |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.154 | We came again to bind them. Then they fled | We came againe to binde them: then they fled |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.194 | That then I lost for thee, now grant me justice! | That then I lost for thee, now grant me iustice. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.209 | As this is false he burdens me withal. | As this is false he burthens me withall. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.220 | Could witness it, for he was with me then, | Could witnesse it: for he was with me then, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.233 | Then fairly I bespoke the officer | Then fairely I bespoke the Officer |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.246 | Cries out I was possessed. Then all together | Cries out, I was possest. Then altogether |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.247 | They fell upon me, bound me, bore me thence, | They fell vpon me, bound me, bore me thence, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.264 | And then you fled into this abbey here, | And then you fled into this Abbey heere, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.269 | And this is false you burden me withal. | And this is false you burthen me withall. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.344 | That bore thee at a burden two fair sons. | That bore thee at a burthen two faire sonnes? |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.361 | What then became of them I cannot tell. | What then became of them, I cannot tell: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.375 | Did call me brother. (To Luciana) What I told you then | Did call me brother. What I told you then, |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.403 | My heavy burden ne'er delivered. | My heauie burthen are deliuered: |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.423 | We'll draw cuts for the senior. Till then, lead thou first. | Wee'l draw Cuts for the Signior, till then, lead thou first. |
| The Comedy of Errors | CE V.i.424 | Nay then, thus: | Nay then thus: |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.4 | You are all resolved rather to die than to | You are all resolu'd rather to dy then to |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.69 | Of more strong link asunder than can ever | Of more strong linke assunder, then can euer |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.117.2 | What then? | What then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.118 | 'Fore me, this fellow speaks! What then? what then? | Fore me, this Fellow speakes. / What then? What then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.120.2 | Well, what then? | Well, what then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.171 | Than is the coal of fire upon the ice, | Then is the coale of fire vpon the Ice, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.223 | I am glad on't. Then we shall ha' means to vent | I am glad on't, then we shall ha meanes to vent |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.234.2 | Then, worthy Martius, | Then worthy Martius, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.263 | Better be held nor more attained than by | Better be held, nor more attain'd then by |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.267 | Will then cry out of Martius, ‘ O, if he | Will then cry out of Martius: Oh, if he |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.i.276 | More than his singularity, he goes | More then his singularity, he goes |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.ii.7 | Since I heard thence. These are the words – I think | Since I heard thence, these are the words, I thinke |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.ii.13 | Who is of Rome worse hated than of you, | (Who is of Rome worse hated then of you) |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.4 | honour than in the embracements of his bed where he | Honor, then in the embracements of his Bed, where he |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.10 | become such a person – that it was no better then picture-like | become such a person, that it was no better then Picture-like |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.16 | than now in first seeing he had proved himself a | then now in first seeing he had proued himselfe a |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.19 | then? | then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.20 | Then his good report should have been my | Then his good report should haue beene my |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.23 | none less dear than thine and my good Martius, I had | none lesse deere then thine, and my good Martius, I had |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.24 | rather had eleven die nobly for their country than one | rather had eleuen dye Nobly for their Countrey, then one |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.36 | With his mailed hand then wiping, forth he goes, | With his mail'd hand, then wiping, forth he goes |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.41 | Than gilt his trophy. The breasts of Hecuba, | Then gilt his Trophe. The brests of Hecuba |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.43 | Than Hector's forehead when it spit forth blood | Then Hectors forhead, when it spit forth blood |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.57 | than look upon his schoolmaster. | then looke vpon his Schoolmaster. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.107 | In troth, I think she would. Fare you well, then. | In troth I thinke she would: / Fare you well then. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iii.112 | Well, then, farewell. | Well, then farewell. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.9 | Then shall we hear their 'larum, and they ours. | Then shall we heare their Larum, & they Ours. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.14 | No, nor a man that fears you less than he: | No, nor a man that feares you lesse then he, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.15 | That's lesser than a little. (Drum afar off) Hark! our drums | That's lesser then a little: Drum a farre off. Hearke, our Drummes |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.17 | Rather than they shall pound us up. Our gates, | Rather then they shall pound vs vp our Gates, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.25 | With hearts more proof than shields. Advance, brave Titus. | With hearts more proofe then Shields. / Aduance braue Titus, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.iv.33 | Further than seen, and one infect another | Farther then seene, and one infect another |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.v.11 | Piercing our Romans. Then, valiant Titus, take | Piercing our Romanes: Then Valiant Titus take |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.v.19 | Than dangerous to me. To Aufidius thus | Then dangerous to me: To Auffidious thus, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.v.24 | Than those she placeth highest. So farewell. | Then those she placeth highest: So farewell. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.13.1 | And then I came away. | And then I came away. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.26 | More than I know the sound of Martius' tongue | More then I know the sound of Martius Tongue |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.45.1 | From rascals worse than they. | From Rascals worse then they. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.70 | Lesser his person than an ill report; | Lessen his person, then an ill report: |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.vi.72 | And that his country's dearer than himself; | And that his Countries deerer then himselfe, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.viii.2.1 | Worse than a promise-breaker. | Worse then a Promise-breaker. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.viii.4 | More than thy fame and envy. Fix thy foot. | More then thy Fame and Enuy: Fix thy foot. |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.22 | Worse than a theft, no less than a traducement, | worse then a Theft, / No lesse then a Traducement, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.53 | More cruel to your good report than grateful | More cruell to your good report, then gratefull |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.57 | Then reason safely with you. Therefore be it known, | Then reason safely with you: Therefore be it knowne, |
| Coriolanus | Cor I.ix.84 | But then Aufidius was within my view, | But then Auffidius was within my view, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.39 | What then, sir? | What then sir? |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.40 | Why, then you should discover a brace of unmeriting, | Why then you should discouer a brace of vnmeriting, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.49 | of the night than with the forehead of the morning. | of the night, then with the forhead of the morning. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.67 | then rejourn the controversy of threepence to a second | then reiourne the Controuersie of three-pence to a second |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.77 | giber for the table than a necessary bencher in the | gyber for the Table, then a necessary Bencher in the |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.113 | than a horse-drench. Is he not wounded? He was wont | then a Horse-drench. Is he not wounded? he was wont |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.154 | Which, being advanced, declines, and then men die. | Which being aduanc'd, declines, and then men dye. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.196.1 | Than sway with them in theirs. | Then sway with them in theirs. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.214.2 | Then our office may | Then our Office may, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.230 | Than carry it but by the suit of the gentry to him | then carry it, / But by the suite of the Gentry to him, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.232 | Than have him hold that purpose and to put it | then haue him hold that purpose, and to put it |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.234 | It shall be to him then as our good wills, | It shall be to him then, as our good wills; |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.243 | Than camels in the war, who have their provand | Then Cammels in their Warre, who haue their Prouand |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.i.244 | Only for bearing burdens, and sore blows | Onely for bearing Burthens, and sore blowes |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.18 | greater devotion than they can render it him, and leaves | greater deuotion, then they can render it him; and leaues |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.49 | Than we to stretch it out. (To the Tribunes) Masters o'th' people, | Then we to stretch it out. Masters a'th' People, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.57 | A kinder value of the people than | a kinder value of the People, then |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.62.1 | Than the rebuke you give it. | then the rebuke you giue it. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.68.1 | Than hear say how I got them. | Then heare say how I got them. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.74 | When the alarum were struck than idly sit | When the Alarum were strucke, then idly sit |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.79 | Than one on's ears to hear it. Proceed, Cominius. | Then on ones Eares to heare it. Proceed Cominius. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.87 | Beyond the mark of others. Our then dictator, | Beyond the marke of others: our then Dictator, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.114 | His ready sense, then straight his doubled spirit | His readie sence: then straight his doubled spirit |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.125 | Than misery itself would give, rewards | Then Miserie it selfe would giue, rewards |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.132.2 | It then remains | It then remaines, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.ii.152 | Flourish. Cornets. Then exeunt. | Flourish Cornets. Then Exeunt. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.71 | Well then, I pray, your price | Well then I pray, your price |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.98 | hat than my heart, I will practise the insinuating nod and | Hat, then my Heart, I will practice the insinuating nod, and |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.113 | Than crave the hire which first we do deserve. | Then craue the higher, which first we do deserue. |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.120 | For truth to o'erpeer. Rather than fool it so, | For Truth to o're-peere. Rather then foole it so, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.186 | Than what he stood for, so his gracious nature | Then what he stood for: so his gracious nature |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.215 | Than dogs that are as often beat for barking | Then Dogges, that are as often beat for barking, |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.229 | More after our commandment than as guided | more after our commandment, / Then as guided |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.232 | Than what you should, made you against the grain | Then what you should, made you against the graine |
| Coriolanus | Cor II.iii.256 | Than stay, past doubt, for greater. | Then stay past doubt, for greater: |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.1 | Tullus Aufidius then had made new head? | Tullus Auffidius then had made new head. |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.4 | So then the Volsces stand but as at first, | So then the Volces stand but as at first, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.47.1 | Have you informed them sithence? | Haue you inform'd them sithence? |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.50 | Why then should I be consul? By yond clouds, | Why then should I be Consull? by yond Clouds |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.98 | Then vail your ignorance; if none, awake | Then vale your Ignorance: If none, awake |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.107 | Than ever frowned in Greece. By Jove himself, | Then euer frown'd in Greece. By Ioue himselfe, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.120 | More worthier than their voices. They know the corn | More worthier then their Voyces. They know the Corne |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.130 | Of our so frank donation. Well, what then? | Of our so franke Donation. Well, what then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.150 | You that will be less fearful than discreet, | You that will be lesse fearefull, then discreet, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.152 | More than you doubt the change on't, that prefer | More then you doubt the change on't: That preferre |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.168 | Then were they chosen. In a better hour | Then were they chosen: in a better houre, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.212 | Bear him to th' rock Tarpeian, and from thence | Beare him to th'Rock Tarpeian, and from thence |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.268 | Than the severity of the public power, | Then the seuerity of the publike Power, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.283.1 | Than so much loss of time. | Then so much losse of time. |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.283.2 | Speak briefly then, | Speake breefely then, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.298 | Which I dare vouch is more than that he hath | (Which I dare vouch, is more then that he hath |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.305 | Being once gangrened, is not then respected | Being once gangren'd, is not then respected |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.307 | Pursue him to his house and pluck him thence, | Pursue him to his house, and plucke him thence, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.i.328 | Be you then as the people's officer. | be you then as the peoples officer: |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.36.2 | Well, what then? What then? | Well, what then? what then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.39.1 | Must I then do't to them? | Must I then doo't to them? |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.59 | Than to take in a town with gentle words, | Then to take in a Towne with gentle words, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.67 | How you can frown, than spend a fawn upon 'em | How you can frowne, then spend a fawne vpon 'em, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.77 | More learned than the ears – waving thy head, | More learned then the eares, wauing thy head, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.92.1 | Than flatter him in a bower. | Then flatter him in a Bower. |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.123.2 | At thy choice, then. | At thy choice then: |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.125 | Than thou of them. Come all to ruin. Let | Then thou of them. Come all to ruine, let |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.126 | Thy mother rather feel thy pride than fear | Thy Mother rather feele thy Pride, then feare |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.141 | Than are upon you yet. | Then are vpon you yet. |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.ii.145 | Well, mildly be it then – mildly! | Well mildely be it then, Mildely. |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.15 | For death, for fine, or banishment, then let them | For death, for fine, or Banishment, then let them |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.28 | Be reined again to temperance, then he speaks | Be rein'd againe to Temperance, then he speakes |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.42 | Shall I be charged no further than this present? | Shall I be charg'd no further then this present? |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.57.1 | Rather than envy you. | Rather then enuy you. |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.62 | Say, then. 'Tis true, I ought so. | Say then: 'tis true, I ought so |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.113 | More holy and profound, than mine own life, | More holy, and profound, then mine owne life, |
| Coriolanus | Cor III.iii.115 | And treasure of my loins. Then if I would | And treasure of my Loynes: then if I would |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.i.22 | Thy tears are salter than a younger man's | Thy teares are salter then a yonger mans, |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.i.31 | Makes feared and talked of more than seen – your son | Makes fear'd, and talk'd of more then seene: your Sonne |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.i.36 | More than a wild exposture to each chance | More then a wilde exposture, to each chance |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.5.1 | Than when it was a-doing. | Then when it was a dooing. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.20.1 | Than thou hast spoken words? | Then thou hast spoken words. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.21 | More noble blows than ever thou wise words, | Moe Noble blowes, then euer yu wise words. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.25.2 | What then? | What then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.ii.25.3 | What then! | What then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.iii.14 | Hath been? Is it ended then? Our state thinks not | Hath bin; is it ended then? Our State thinks not |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.iv.4 | Have I heard groan and drop. Then know me not, | Haue I heard groane, and drop: Then know me not, |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.46 | an ass it is! Then thou dwell'st with daws too? | an Asse it is, then thou dwel'st with Dawes too? |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.50 | Ay, 'tis an honester service than to meddle | I, tis an honester seruice, then to meddle |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.87 | Stand I before thee here. Then if thou hast | Stand I before thee heere: Then if thou hast |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.97 | Th'art tired, then, in a word, I also am | Th'art tyr'd, then in a word, I also am |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.109 | Than thee, all-noble Martius. Let me twine | Then thee all-Noble Martius. Let me twine |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.120 | Than when I first my wedded mistress saw | Then when I first my wedded Mistris saw |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.131 | Thou art thence banished, we would muster all | Thou art thence Banish'd, we would muster all |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.149 | And more a friend than e'er an enemy; | And more a Friend, then ere an Enemie, |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.163 | him than I could think. | him, then I could think. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.167 | than he you wot one. | then he, / You wot one. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.225 | Why, then we shall have a stirring | Why then wee shall haue a stirring |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.232 | more bastard children than war's a destroyer of men. | more bastard Children, then warres a destroyer of men. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.v.238 | Reason: because they then less | Reason, because they then lesse |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.7 | Dissentious numbers pestering streets than see | Dissentious numbers pestring streets, then see |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.28 | Than when these fellows ran about the streets, | Then when these Fellowes ran about the streets, |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.74 | Than violent'st contrariety. | Then violent'st Contrariety. |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.92 | Made by some other deity than Nature, | Made by some other Deity then Nature, |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vi.95 | Than boys pursuing summer butterflies, | Then Boyes pursuing Summer Butter-flies, |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.9 | Even to my person, than I thought he would | Euen to my person, then I thought he would |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.33 | To expel him thence. I think he'll be to Rome | To expell him thence. I thinke hee'l be to Rome |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.42 | Not to be other than one thing, not moving | Not to be other then one thing, not moouing |
| Coriolanus | Cor IV.vii.57 | Thou art poor'st of all; then shortly art thou mine. | Thou art poor'st of all; then shortly art thou mine. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.i.38 | More than the instant army we can make, | More then the instant Armie we can make |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.i.44 | Unheard – what then? | vnheard: what then? |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.i.52 | The veins unfilled, our blood is cold, and then | The Veines vnfill'd, our blood is cold, and then |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.i.57 | Than in our priest-like fasts. Therefore I'll watch him | Then in our Priest-like Fasts: therefore Ile watch him |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.i.59 | And then I'll set upon him. | And then Ile set vpon him. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.6 | Will no more hear from thence. | will no more heare from thence. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.37 | Then you should hate Rome, as he does. | Then you should hate Rome, as he do's. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.67 | thee no worse than thy old father Menenius does! O my | thee no worse then thy old Father Menenius do's. O my |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.83 | Than pity note how much. Therefore be gone. | Then pitty: Note how much, therefore be gone. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.ii.84 | Mine ears against your suits are stronger than | Mine eares against your suites, are stronger then |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.22 | My wife comes foremost, then the honoured mould | My wife comes formost, then the honour'd mould |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.29 | Of stronger earth than others. My mother bows, | Of stronger earth then others: my Mother bowes, |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.52.1 | Than that of common sons. | Then that of common Sonnes. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.53 | Whilst with no softer cushion than the flint | Whil'st with no softer Cushion then the Flint |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.58 | Then let the pebbles on the hungry beach | Then let the Pibbles on the hungry beach |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.59 | Fillip the stars. Then let the mutinous winds | Fillop the Starres: Then, let the mutinous windes |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.97 | How more unfortunate than all living women | How more vnfortunate then all liuing women |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.122 | Than seek the end of one, thou shalt no sooner | Then seeke the end of one; thou shalt no sooner |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.123 | March to assault thy country than to tread – | March to assault thy Country, then to treade |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.128 | I'll run away till I am bigger, but then I'll fight. | Ile run away / Till I am bigger, but then Ile fight. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.158 | Than can our reasons. There's no man in the world | Then can our Reasons. There's no man in the world |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.171 | Than pity to our prayers. Down! An end; | Then pitty to our Prayers. Downe: an end, |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.177 | Than thou hast to deny't. Come, let us go. | Then thou hast to deny't. Come, let vs go: |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.182 | And then I'll speak a little. | & then Ile speak a litle |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iii.205 | A better witness back than words, which we, | A better witnesse backe then words, which we |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iv.14 | than a creeping thing. | then a creeping thing. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iv.17 | mother now than an eight-year-old horse. The tartness | Mother now, then an eight yeare old horse. The tartnesse |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.iv.28 | mercy in him than there is milk in a male tiger. That | mercy in him, then there is milke in a male-Tyger, that |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.44.1 | For no less spoil than glory – | For no lesse Spoile, then Glory. |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.73 | Than when I parted hence, but still subsisting | Then when I parted hence: but still subsisting |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.78 | Doth more than counterpoise a full third part | Doth more then counterpoize a full third part |
| Coriolanus | Cor V.vi.81 | Than shame to th' Romans. And we here deliver, | Then shame to th' Romaines. And we heere deliuer |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.i.2 | No more obey the heavens than our courtiers | no more obey the Heauens / Then our Courtiers: |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.i.26 | Crush him together, rather than unfold | Crush him together, rather then vnfold |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.i.37 | Then old, and fond of issue, took such sorrow | Then old, and fond of yssue, tooke such sorrow |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.ii.26 | Than doth become a man. I will remain | Then doth become a man. I will remaine |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.ii.62.1 | More sharp than this is. | More sharpe then this is. |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.ii.93 | But that my master rather played than fought | But that my Master rather plaid, then fought, |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.iii.5 | If my shirt were bloody, then to shift it. Have I hurt | If my Shirt were bloody, then to shift it. / Haue I hurt |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.6.1 | Then waved his handkerchief? | Then wau'd his Handkerchiefe? |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.7 | Senseless linen, happier therein than I! | Senselesse Linnen, happier therein then I: |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.21 | The smallness of a gnat, to air: and then | The smalnesse of a Gnat, to ayre: and then |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.iv.32 | T' encounter me with orisons, for then | T'encounter me with Orisons, for then |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.1 | Believe it sir, I have seen him in Britain: he was then | Beleeue it Sir, I haue seene him in Britaine; hee was then |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.4 | then have looked on him without the help of admiration, | then haue look'd on him, without the help of Admiration, |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.7 | You speak of him when he was less furnished than | You speake of him when he was lesse furnish'd, then |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.13 | he must be weighed rather by her value than his | he must be weighed rather by her valew, then his |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.16 | And then his banishment. | And then his banishment. |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.25 | have been often bound for no less than my life. – | haue bin often bound for no lesse then my life. |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.32 | rather than story him in his own hearing. | rather then story him in his owne hearing. |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.39 | purpose as then each bore, upon importance of so | purpose, as then each bore, vpon importance of so |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.41 | By your pardon, sir, I was then a young traveller, | By your pardon Sir, I was then a young Traueller, |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.42 | rather shunned to go even with what I heard than in | rather shun'd to go euen with what I heard, then in |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.58 | less attemptable than any the rarest of our ladies in | lesse attemptible then any, the rarest of our Ladies in |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.76 | More than the world enjoys. | More then the world enioyes. |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.108 | confidence than her reputation. And to bar your | Confidence, then her Reputation. And to barre your |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.126 | no more advantage than the opportunity of a | no more aduantage then the opportunitie of a |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.v.127 | second conference, and I will bring from thence | second conference, and I will bring from thence, that |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.39 | Then afterward up higher: but there is | Then afterward vp higher: but there is |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.41 | More than the locking up the spirits a time, | More then the locking vp the Spirits a time, |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.50 | I'll tell thee on the instant, thou art then | Ile tell thee on the instant, thou art then |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vi.72 | As thou'lt desire: and then myself, I chiefly, | As thou'lt desire: and then my selfe, I cheefely, |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.96 | Than to be sure they do – for certainties | Then to be sure they do. For Certainties |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.98 | The remedy then born – discover to me | The remedy then borne. Discouer to me |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.104 | Fixing it only here; should I – damned then – | Fiering it onely heere, should I (damn'd then) |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.108 | With labour – then by-peeping in an eye | With labour:) then by peeping in an eye |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.137 | More noble than that runagate to your bed, | More Noble then that runnagate to your bed, |
| Cymbeline | Cym I.vii.171 | More than a mortal seeming. Be not angry, | More then a mortall seeming. Be not angrie |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.i.3 | pound on't: and then a whoreson jackanapes | pound on't: and then a whorson Iacke-an-Apes, |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.i.59 | More hateful than the foul expulsion is | More hatefull then the foule expulsion is |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.i.60 | Of thy dear husband, than that horrid act | Of thy deere Husband. Then that horrid Act |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.ii.3 | I have read three hours then: mine eyes are weak, | I haue read three houres then: / Mine eyes are weake, |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.ii.16 | And whiter than the sheets! That I might touch! | And whiter then the Sheetes: that I might touch, |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.ii.40 | Stronger than ever law could make; this secret | Stronger then euer Law could make; this Secret |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.18 | then let her consider. | then let her consider. |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.43.1 | And then she's yours. | And then she's yours. |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.78 | Than some whose tailors are as dear as yours | Then some whose Taylors are as deere as yours, |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.110.1 | You felt than make't my boast. | You felt, then make't my boast. |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.116 | Yet who than he more mean? – to knit their souls – | (Yet who then he more meane) to knit their soules |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.131 | He never can meet more mischance than come | He neuer can meete more mischance, then come |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iii.134 | In my respect, than all the hairs above thee, | In my respect, then all the Heires aboue thee, |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.19 | In our not-fearing Britain than have tidings | In our not-fearing-Britaine, then haue tydings |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.21 | Are men more ordered than when Julius Caesar | Are men more order'd, then when Iulius Casar |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.38.2 | He was expected then, | He was expected then, |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.95.2 | Then, if you can, | Then if you can |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.112 | Than they are to their virtues, which is nothing. | Then they are to their Vertues, which is nothing: |
| Cymbeline | Cym II.iv.120 | More evident than this: for this was stolen. | More euident then this: for this was stolne. |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.i.7 | Than in his feats deserving it – for him, | Then in his Feats deseruing it) for him, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.i.16 | Which then they had to take from's, to resume | Which then they had to take from's, to resume |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.i.36 | is stronger than it was at that time: and – as I | is stronger then it was at that time: and (as I |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.i.4.3 | Say then to Caesar, | Say then to Casar, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.i.64 | Caesar, that hath moe kings his servants than | (Casar, that hath moe Kings his Seruants, then |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.i.66 | Receive it from me, then. War and confusion | Receyue it from me then. Warre, and Confusion |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.8 | More goddess-like than wife-like, such assaults | More Goddesse-like, then Wife-like; such Assaults |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.53 | Glide thither in a day? Then, true Pisanio, | Glide thither in a day? Then true Pisanio, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.73 | Where horses have been nimbler than the sands | Where Horses haue bin nimbler then the Sands |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.ii.77 | A riding-suit; no costlier than would fit | A Riding Suit: No costlier then would fit |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.14 | And you may then revolve what tales I have told you | And you may then reuolue what Tales, I haue told you, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.21 | Than is the full-winged eagle. O, this life | Then is the full-wing'd Eagle. Oh this life, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.22 | Is nobler than attending for a check: | Is Nobler, then attending for a checke: |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.23 | Richer than doing nothing for a robe, | Richer, then doing nothing for a Babe: |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.24 | Prouder than rustling in unpaid-for silk: | Prouder, then rustling in vnpayd-for Silke: |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.60 | Was not far off: then was I as a tree | Was not farre off: then was I as a Tree |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.72 | More pious debts to heaven than in all | More pious debts to Heauen, then in all |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iii.92 | And thus I set my foot on's neck,’ even then | And thus I set my foote on's necke, euen then |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.35 | Whose edge is sharper than the sword, whose tongue | Whose edge is sharper then the Sword, whose tongue |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.49 | Thou then look'dst like a villain: now, methinks, | Thou then look'dst like a Villaine: now, me thinkes |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.53 | And, for I am richer than to hang by th' walls, | And for I am richer then to hang by th'walles, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.97 | Will then be panged by me. Prithee, dispatch: | Will then be pang'd by me. Prythee dispatch, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.102.2 | Do't, and to bed then. | Doo't, and to bed then. |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.103.2 | Wherefore then | Wherefore then |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.117.2 | Then, madam, | Then Madam, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.120 | But if I were as wise as honest, then | But if I were as wise, as honest, then |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.137.1 | Then not in Britain must you bide. | Then not in Britaine must you bide. |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.137.2 | Where then? | Where then? |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.iv.155.2 | Well then, here's the point: | Well then, heere's the point: |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.v.6 | To show less sovereignty than they, must needs | To shew lesse Soueraignty then they, must needs |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.v.33 | A thing more made of malice than of duty, | A thing more made of malice, then of duty, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.v.73 | Than lady, ladies, woman, from every one | Then Lady, Ladies, Woman, from euery one |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.v.99.2 | Then, sir: | Then Sir: |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.v.137 | than my noble and natural person; together with | then my Noble and naturall person; together with |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.v.140 | eyes; there shall she see my valour, which will then | eyes; there shall she see my valour, which wil then |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.vi.13 | Is sorer than to lie for need: and falsehood | Is sorer, then to lye for Neede: and Falshood |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.vi.14 | Is worse in kings than beggars. My dear lord, | Is worse in Kings, then Beggers. My deere Lord, |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.vi.24 | Take, or lend. Ho! No answer? Then I'll enter. | Take, or lend. Hoa? No answer? Then Ile enter. |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.vii.17 | No elder than a boy! | No elder then a Boy. |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.vii.49 | Had been my father's sons, then had my prize | Had bin my Fathers Sonnes, then had my prize |
| Cymbeline | Cym III.vii.55 | That had a court no bigger than this cave, | That had a Court no bigger then this Caue, |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.73 | More slavish did I ne'er than answering | More slauish did I ne're, then answering |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.84.2 | Hence, then, and thank | Hence then, and thanke |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.105 | Which then he wore: the snatches in his voice, | Which then he wore: the snatches in his voice, |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.126 | Protects not us, then why should we be tender, | Protects not vs, then why should we be tender, |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.143 | Or they so suffering: then on good ground we fear, | Or they so suffering: then on good ground we feare, |
| Cymbeline | Cym 1IV.ii.145.1 | More perilous than the head. | More perillous then the head. |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.201.1 | Than have seen this. | Then haue seene this. |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.242.1 | Than priests and fanes that lie. | Then Priests, and Phanes that lye. |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.242.2 | We'll speak it then. | Wee'l speake it then. |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.257.1 | Come on then, and remove him. | Come on then, and remoue him. |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.360 | He'll then instruct us of this body. Young one, | Hee'l then instruct vs of this body: Young one, |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.364 | That – otherwise than noble nature did – | That (otherwise then noble Nature did) |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.375 | Thou mov'st no less with thy complaining than | Thou mou'st no lesse with thy complaining, then |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.386 | Than thine own worth prefer thee: go with me. | Then thine owne worth preferre thee: Go with me. |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.ii.395 | And rather father thee than master thee. | And rather Father thee, then Master thee: |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.iii.30 | Than what you hear of. Come more, for more you're ready: | Then what you heare of. Come more, for more you're ready: |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.iv.23 | Though Cloten then but young – you see, not wore him | (Though Cloten then but young) you see, not wore him |
| Cymbeline | Cym IV.iv.30.2 | Than be so, | Then be so, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.i.4 | Must murder wives much better than themselves | Must murther Wiues much better then themselues |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.i.30 | More valour in me than my habits show. | More valour in me, then my habits show. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.1.3 | poor soldier. They march over, and go out. Then enter again, in | poore Souldier. They march ouer, and goe out. Then enter againe in |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.1.5 | Iachimo, and then leaves him | Iachimo, and then leaues him. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.11.1 | The battle continues, the Britons fly, Cymbeline is taken: then enter | The Battaile continues, the Britaines fly, Cymbeline is taken: Then enter |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.ii.14.2 | and exeunt. Then enter Lucius, Iachimo, and Innogen | and Exeunt. Then enter Lucius, Iachimo, and Imogen. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.9 | More plentiful than tools to do't, struck down | More plentifull, then Tooles to doo't: strooke downe |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.13.1 | To die with lengthened shame. | To dye with length'ned shame. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.20 | The country base than to commit such slaughter, | The Country base, then to commit such slaughter, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.22 | Than those for preservation cased, or shame – | Then those for preseruation cas'd, or shame) |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.39 | Upon the pikes o'th' hunters. Then began | Vpon the Pikes o'th'Hunters. Then beganne |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.55 | Than to work any. Will you rhyme upon't, | Then to worke any. Will you Rime vpon't, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iii.72 | Sweet words; or hath moe ministers than we | Sweet words; or hath moe ministers then we |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.5 | Than one that's sick o'th' gout, since he had rather | Then one that's sicke o'th'Gowt, since he had rather |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.6 | Groan so in perpetuity than be cured | Groane so in perpetuity, then be cur'd |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.9 | More than my shanks and wrists: you good gods, give me | More then my shanks, & wrists: you good Gods giue me |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.11 | Then free for ever. Is't enough I am sorry? | Then free for euer. Is't enough I am sorry? |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.14 | I cannot do it better than in gyves, | I cannot do it better then in Gyues, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.15 | Desired more than constrained: to satisfy, | Desir'd, more then constrain'd, to satisfie |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.17 | No stricter render of me than my all. | No stricter render of me, then my All. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.18 | I know you are more clement than vile men, | I know you are more clement then vilde men, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.30.4 | before them. Then, after other music, follow the two young Leonati | before them. Then after other Musicke, followes the two young Leonati |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.39 | Whose father then – as men report | Whose Father then (as men report, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.77 | Then, Jupiter, thou king of gods, | Then Iupiter, yu King of Gods, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.117 | More sweet than our blest fields: his royal bird | More sweet then our blest Fields: his Royall Bird |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.135 | Nobler than that it covers. Let thy effects | Nobler then that it couers. Let thy effects |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.143 | the old stock, and freshly grow, then shall | the old Stocke, and freshly grow, then shall |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.173 | I am merrier to die than thou art to live. | I am merrier to dye, then thou art to liue. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.180 | Your death has eyes in's head then: I have | Your death has eyes in's head then: I haue |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.197 | I'll be hanged then. | Ile be hang'd then. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.iv.198 | Thou shalt be then freer than a gaoler; no bolts for | Thou shalt be then freer then a Gaoler; no bolts for |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.27.2 | Who worse than a physician | Who worse then a Physitian |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.113 | Than I to your highness, who being born your vassal, | Then I to your Highnesse, who being born your vassaile |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.152 | Than die ere I hear more: strive, man, and speak. | Then dye ere I heare more: striue man, and speake. |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.176 | And then a mind put in't, either our brags | And then a minde put in't, either our bragges |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.183 | Pieces of gold, 'gainst this – which he then wore | Peeces of Gold, 'gainst this, which then he wore |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.188 | Than I did truly find her, stakes this ring, | Then I did truly finde her, stakes this Ring, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.217 | By being worse than they. I am Posthumus, | By being worse then they. I am Posthumus, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.219 | That caused a lesser villain than myself, | That caus'd a lesser villaine then my selfe, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.225 | Be villainy less than 'twas. O Innogen! | Be villany lesse then 'twas. Oh Imogen! |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.280 | Then in my pocket, which directed him | Then in my pocket, which directed him |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.302 | This man is better than the man he slew, | This man is better then the man he slew, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.304 | More of thee merited than a band of Clotens | More of thee merited, then a Band of Clotens |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.315.2 | Have at it then, by leave: | Haue at it then, by leaue |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.328 | Then spare not the old father. Mighty sir, | Then spare not the old Father. Mighty Sir, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.345 | For that which I did then. Beaten for loyalty | For that which I did then. Beaten for Loyaltie, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.355 | Unlike than this thou tell'st. I lost my children: | Vnlike, then this thou tell'st. I lost my Children, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.411 | The purpose I then followed. That I was he, | The purpose I then follow'd. That I was he, |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.415 | As then your force did. Take that life, beseech you, | As then your force did. Take that life, beseech you |
| Cymbeline | Cym V.v.441 | jointed to the old stock, and freshly grow, then | ioynted to the old Stocke, and freshly grow, then |
| Hamlet | Ham I.i.39 | The bell then beating one – | The Bell then beating one. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.i.54 | Is not this something more than fantasy? | Is not this something more then Fantasie? |
| Hamlet | Ham I.i.149 | And then it started, like a guilty thing | And then it started, like a guilty thing |
| Hamlet | Ham I.i.162 | And then, they say, no spirit dares stir abroad; | And then (they say) no Spirit can walke abroad, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.i.163 | The nights are wholesome; then no planets strike; | The nights are wholsome, then no Planets strike, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.37 | To business with the King, more than the scope | To businesse with the King, more then the scope |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.49 | Than is the throne of Denmark to thy father. | Then is the Throne of Denmarke to thy Father. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.65 | A little more than kin, and less than kind! | A little more then kin, and lesse then kinde. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.111 | Than that which dearest father bears his son | Then that which deerest Father beares his Sonne, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.153 | Than I to Hercules. Within a month, | Then I to Hercules. Within a Moneth? |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.218 | But even then the morning cock crew loud, | But euen then, the Morning Cocke crew lowd; |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.229 | Then saw you not his face? | Then saw you not his face? |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.232 | A countenance more in sorrow than in anger. | A countenance more in sorrow then in anger. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.ii.257 | Till then sit still, my soul. Foul deeds will rise, | Till then sit still my soule; foule deeds will rise, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.24 | Whereof he is the head. Then, if he says he loves you, | Whereof he is the Head. Then if he sayes he loues you, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.28 | Than the main voice of Denmark goes withal. | Then the maine voyce of Denmarke goes withall. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.29 | Then weigh what loss your honour may sustain | Then weigh what losse your Honour may sustaine, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.43 | Be wary then. Best safety lies in fear. | Be wary then, best safety lies in feare; |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.80 | Thou canst not then be false to any man. | Thou canst not then be false to any man. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.118 | Giving more light than heat, extinct in both | Giuing more light then heate; extinct in both, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.123 | Than a command to parle. For Lord Hamlet, | Then a command to parley. For Lord Hamlet, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iii.126 | Than may be given you. In few, Ophelia, | Then may be giuen you. In few, Ophelia, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iv.5 | Indeed? I heard it not. It then draws near the season | Indeed I heard it not: then it drawes neere the season, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iv.16 | More honoured in the breach than the observance. | More honour'd in the breach, then the obseruance. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.iv.63 | It will not speak. Then I will follow it. | It will not speake: then will I follow it. |
| Hamlet | Ham I.v.32 | And duller shouldst thou be than the fat weed | And duller should'st thou be then the fat weede |
| Hamlet | Ham I.v.121 | How say you then? Would heart of man once think it? | How say you then, would heart of man once think it? |
| Hamlet | Ham I.v.156 | Hic et ubique? Then we'll shift our ground. | Hic & vbique? Then wee'l shift for grownd, |
| Hamlet | Ham I.v.167 | Than are dreamt of in your philosophy. | Then are dream't of in our Philosophy. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.i.12 | Than your particular demands will touch it. | Then your particular demands will touch it, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.i.49 | And then, sir, does 'a this – 'a does – What | And then Sir does he this? / He does: what |
| Hamlet | Ham II.i.57 | Or then, or then, with such or such, and, as you say, | Or then or then, with such and such; and as you say, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.i.88 | Then goes he to the length of all his arm, | Then goes he to the length of all his arme; |
| Hamlet | Ham II.i.119 | More grief to hide than hate to utter love. | More greefe to hide, then hate to vtter loue. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.8 | More than his father's death, that thus hath put him | More then his Fathers death, that thus hath put him |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.29.1 | Than to entreaty. | Then to Entreatie. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.100 | Mad let us grant him then. And now remains | Mad let vs grant him then: and now remaines |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.142 | This must not be.’ And then I prescripts gave her, | This must not be: and then, I Precepts gaue her, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.147 | Fell into a sadness, then into a fast, | Fell into a Sadnesse, then into a Fast, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.148 | Thence to a watch, thence into a weakness, | Thence to a Watch, thence into a Weaknesse, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.149 | Thence to a lightness, and, by this declension, | Thence to a Lightnesse, and by this declension |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.163 | Be you and I behind an arras then. | Be you and I behinde an Arras then, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.176 | Then I would you were so honest a man. | Then I would you were so honest a man. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.231 | Then you live about her waist, or in the middle | Then you liue about her waste, or in the middle |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.238 | Then is doomsday near. But your news is not | Then is Doomesday neere: But your newes is not |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.244 | Then is the world one. | Then is the World one. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.248 | Why, then 'tis none to you. For there is nothing | Why then 'tis none to you; for there is nothing |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.251 | Why, then your ambition makes it one. | Why then your Ambition makes it one: |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.262 | Then are our beggars bodies, and our monarchs | Then are our Beggers bodies; and our Monarchs |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.290 | Nay then, I have an eye of you. – If you | Nay then I haue an eye of you: if you |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.302 | appeareth nothing to me than a foul and pestilent congregation | appeares no other thing to mee, then a foule and pestilent congregation |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.313 | Why did ye laugh then, when I said ‘ Man | Why did you laugh, when I said, Man |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.346 | longer than they can sing? Will they not say afterwards, | longer then they can sing? Will they not say afterwards |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.366 | something in this more than natural, if philosophy could | something in this more then Naturall, if Philosophie could |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.370 | hands. Come then. Th' appurtenance of welcome is | hands, come: The appurtenance of Welcome, is |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.374 | than yours. You are welcome. But my uncle-father | then yours. You are welcome: but my Vnckle Father, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.387 | 'twas then, indeed. | 'twas so indeed. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.394 | Then came each actor on his ass – | Then can each Actor on his Asse--- |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.413 | What follows then, my lord? | What followes then, my Lord? |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.416 | and then you know, | and then you know, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.425 | heaven than when I saw you last by the altitude of a | Heauen then when I saw you last, by the altitude of a |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.472 | Th' unnerved father falls. Then senseless Ilium, | Th'vnnerued Father fals. Then senselesse Illium, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.489 | With less remorse than Pyrrhus' bleeding sword | With lesse remorse then Pyrrhus bleeding sword |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.510 | But if the gods themselves did see her then, | But if the Gods themselues did see her then, |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.524 | than their ill report while you live. | then their ill report while you liued. |
| Hamlet | Ham II.ii.602 | More relative than this. The play's the thing | More Relatiue then this: The Play's the thing, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.53 | Than is my deed to my most painted word. | Then is my deede, to my most painted word. |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.54 | O, heavy burden! | Oh heauie burthen! |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.82 | Than fly to others that we know not of? | Then flye to others that we know not of. |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.99 | As made the things more rich. Their perfume lost, | As made the things more rich, then perfume left: |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.110 | than with honesty? | then your Honestie? |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.112 | transform honesty from what it is to a bawd than the | transforme Honestie from what it is, to a Bawd, then the |
| Hamlet | Ham III.i.125 | ambitious, with more offences at my beck than I | Ambitious, with more offences at my becke, then I |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.38 | your clowns speak no more than is set down for them. | your Clownes, speake no more then is set downe for them. |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.42 | then to be considered. That's villainous, and shows a | then to be considered: that's Villanous, & shewes a |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.43 | most pitiful ambition in the fool that uses it. And then | most pittifull Ambition in the Foole that vses it. |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.138 | So long? Nay then, let the devil wear black, for | So long? Nay then let the Diuel weare blacke, for |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.140 | ago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope a great | ago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope, a great |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.142 | Lady, 'a must build churches then, or else shall 'a suffer | byrlady he must builde Churches then: or else shall he suffer |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.302 | Why then, belike he likes it not, perdy. | Why then belike he likes it not perdie. |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.333 | Then thus she says: your behaviour hath | Then thus she sayes: your behauior hath |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.378 | on than a pipe? Call me what instrument you will, | on, then a Pipe? Call me what Instrument you will, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.ii.390 | Then I will come to my mother by and by. | Then will I come to my Mother, by and by: |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iii.31 | 'Tis meet that some more audience than a mother, | 'Tis meete that some more audience then a Mother, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iii.44 | Were thicker than itself with brother's blood, | Were thicker then it selfe with Brothers blood, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iii.50 | Or pardoned being down? Then I'll look up. | Or pardon'd being downe? Then Ile looke vp, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iii.64 | To give in evidence. What then? What rests? | To giue in euidence. What then? What rests? |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iii.84 | 'Tis heavy with him. And am I then revenged, | 'Tis heauie with him: and am I then reueng'd, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iii.93 | Then trip him, that his heels may kick at heaven, | Then trip him, that his heeles may kicke at Heauen, |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iv.18 | Nay, then I'll set those to you that can speak. | Nay, then Ile set those to you that can speake. |
| Hamlet | Ham III.iv.130 | My stern effects. Then what I have to do | My sterne effects: then what I haue to do, |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.ii.7 | Tell us where 'tis, that we may take it thence | Tell vs where 'tis, that we may take it thence, |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.iv.23 | Why, then the Polack never will defend it. | |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.iv.56 | When honour's at the stake. How stand I then, | |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.v.52 | Then up he rose and donned his clothes, | Then vp he rose, & don'd his clothes, |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.v.103 | Than young Laertes, in a riotous head, | Then young Laertes, in a Riotous head, |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.v.146.2 | Will you know them then? | Will you know them then. |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.v.175 | This nothing's more than matter. | This nothings more then matter. |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.vii.121 | And then this ‘ should ’ is like a spendthrift sigh, | |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.vii.125.1 | More than in words? | More then in words? |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.vii.183.2 | Alas, then she is drowned? | Alas then, is she drown'd? |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.28 | drown or hang themselves more than their even-Christian. | drowne or hang themselues, more then their euen Christian. |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.35 | What, art a heathen? How dost thou | What, ar't a Heathen? how dost thou |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.41 | What is he that builds stronger than | What is he that builds stronger then |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.48 | built stronger than the church. Argal, the gallows may | built stronger then the Church: Argall, the Gallowes may |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.50 | Who builds stronger than a mason, a | Who builds stronger then a Mason, a |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.107 | double ones too, than the length and breadth of a pair | double ones too, then the length and breadth of a paire |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.130 | What woman then? | What woman then? |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.166 | Why he more than another? | Why he, more then another? |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.290 | Strengthen your patience in our last night's speech. | Strengthen you patience in our last nights speech, |
| Hamlet | Ham V.i.295 | Till then in patience our proceeding be. | Till then, in patience our proceeding be. |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.6 | Worse than the mutines in the bilboes. Rashly, | Worse then the mutines in the Bilboes, rashly, |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.74 | And a man's life's no more than to say ‘one'. | and a mans life's no more / Then to say one: |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.157 | it might be ‘ hangers ’ till then. But on! Six Barbary | it might be Hangers till then; but on sixe Barbary |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.230 | Then Hamlet does it not. Hamlet denies it. | Then Hamlet does it not, Hamlet denies it: |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.231 | Who does it then? His madness. If't be so, | Who does it then? His Madnesse? If't be so, |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.267 | Richer than that which four successive kings | Richer then that, which foure successiue Kings |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.316 | Then, venom, to thy work. | Then venome to thy worke. |
| Hamlet | Ham V.ii.335 | I am more an antique Roman than a Dane. | I am more an Antike Roman then a Dane: |
| Hamlet | Ham IV.vi.34 | | [Q1 replaces this scene with the following] Enter Horatio and the Queene. HOR. Madame, your sonne is safe arriv'de in Denmarke, This letter I euen now receiv'd of him, Whereas he writes how he escap't the danger, And subtle treason that the king had plotted, Being crossed by the contention of the windes, He found the Packet sent to the king of England, Wherein he saw himselfe betray'd to death, As at his next conuersion with your grace, He will relate the circumstance at full. QUEENE. Then I perceiue there's treason in his lookes That seem'd to sugar o're his villanie: But I will soothe and please him for a time, For murderous mindes are alwayes jealous, But know not you Horatio where he is? HOR. Yes Madame, and he hath appoynted me To meete him on the east side of the Cittie To morrow morning. QUEENE. O faile not, good Horatio, and withall, commend me A mothers care to him, bid him a while Be wary of his presence, lest that he Faile in that he goes about. HOR. Madam, neuer make doubt of that: I thinke by this the news be come to court: He is arriv'de, obserue the king, and you shall Quickely finde, Hamlet being here, Things fell not to his minde. QUEENE. But what became of Gilderstone and Rossencraft? HOR. He being set ashore, they went for England, And in the Packet there writ down that doome To be perform'd on them poynted for him: And by great chance he had his fathers Seale, So all was done without discouerie. QUEENE. Thankes be to heauen for blessing of the prince, Horatio once againe I take my leaue, With thowsand mothers blessings to my sonne. HORAT. Madam adue. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.30 | Therefore we meet not now. Then let me hear | Therefore we meete not now. Then let me heare |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.47 | It seems then that the tidings of this broil | It seemes then, that the tidings of this broile, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.89 | Then would I have his Harry, and he mine. | Then would I haue his Harry, and he mine: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.i.106 | Than out of anger can be uttered. | Then out of anger can be vttered. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.22 | Well, how then? Come, roundly, roundly. | Well, how then? Come roundly, roundly. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.23 | Marry then, sweet wag, when thou art King let | Marry then, sweet Wagge, when thou art King, let |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.94 | should speak truly, little better than one of the wicked. | shold speake truly) little better then one of the wicked. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.119 | Then art thou damned for keeping thy word with | Then art thou damn'd for keeping thy word with |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.140 | Well then, once in my days I'll be a | Well then, once in my dayes Ile be a |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.144 | By the Lord, I'll be a traitor then, when thou | Ile be a Traitor then, when thou |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.169 | pleasure to fail – and then will they adventure upon | pleasure to faile; and then will they aduenture vppon |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.183 | he fight longer than he sees reason, I'll forswear arms. | he fight longer then he sees reason, Ile forswear Armes. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.208 | By how much better than my word I am, | By how much better then my word I am, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.ii.213 | Than that which hath no foil to set it off. | Then that which hath no foyle to set it off. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.6 | Mighty, and to be feared, than my condition, | Mighty, and to be fear'd, then my condition |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.48 | I then, all smarting with my wounds being cold, | I then, all-smarting, with my wounds being cold, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.70 | Whate'er Lord Harry Percy then had said | What euer Harry Percie then had said, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.75 | What then he said, so he unsay it now. | What then he said, so he vnsay it now. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.84 | Hath lately married. Shall our coffers then | Hath lately married. Shall our Coffers then, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.103 | Who then affrighted with their bloody looks | Who then affrighted with their bloody lookes, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.111 | Then let not him be slandered with revolt. | Then let him not be sland'red with Reuolt. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.140 | Of my wife's brother, then his cheek looked pale, | Of my Wiues Brother, then his cheeke look'd pale, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.146 | And then it was, when the unhappy King – | And then it was, when the vnhappy King |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.153 | But soft, I pray you, did King Richard then | But soft I pray you; did King Richard then |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.156 | Nay then, I cannot blame his cousin King | Nay then I cannot blame his Cousin King, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.196 | To rouse a lion than to start a hare! | To rowze a Lyon, then to start a Hare. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.204 | So he that doth redeem her thence might wear | So he that doth redeeme her thence, might weare |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.248 | This fawning greyhound then did proffer me! | This fawning Grey-hound then did proffer me, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.255 | Then once more to your Scottish prisoners. | Then once more to your Scottish Prisoners. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.274 | And then the power of Scotland, and of York, | And then the power of Scotland, and of Yorke |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 I.iii.287 | Than I by letters shall direct your course. | Then I by Letters shall direct your course |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.18 | a king Christian could be better bit than I have been | King in Christendome, could be better bit, then I haue beene |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.21 | jordan, and then we leak in your chimney, and your | Iourden, and then we leake in your Chimney: and your |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.52 | purses than giving direction doth from labouring. Thou | Purses, then giuing direction, doth from labouring. Thou |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.78 | hold in, such as will strike sooner than speak, and speak | holde in, such as will strike sooner then speake; and speake |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.79 | sooner than drink, and drink sooner than pray. And yet, | sooner then drinke, and drinke sooner then pray: and yet |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.i.90 | beholding to the night than to fern-seed for your | beholding to the Night, then to the Fernseed, for your |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.ii.60 | from your encounter, then they light on us. | from your encounter, then they light on vs. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.ii.96 | Come my masters, let us share, and then to | Come my Masters, let vs share, and then to |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.4 | He could be contented! Why is he not then? In respect | He could be contented: Why is he not then? in respect |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.6 | loves his own barn better than he loves our house. Let | loues his owne Barne better then he loues our house. Let |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.100 | Well, do not then, for since you love me not | Well, do not then. For since you loue me not, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iii.111 | Than Harry Percy's wife. Constant you are, | Then Harry Percies wife. Constant you are, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.16 | they cry ‘ Hem!’ and bid you ‘ Play it off!’ To conclude, | then they cry hem, and bid you play it off. To conclude, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.24 | life than ‘ Eight shillings and sixpence,’ and ‘ You are | life, then Eight shillings and six pence, and, You are |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.71 | Why then your brown bastard is your only | Why then your browne Bastard is your onely |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.82 | Let them alone awhile, and then open the | Let them alone awhile, and then open the |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.98 | words than a parrot, and yet the son of a woman! His | words then a Parret, and yet the sonne of a Woman. His |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.118 | tale of the sun's? If thou didst, then behold that | Tale of the Sunne? If thou didst, then behold that |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.122 | a coward is worse than a cup of sack with lime in it. A | a Coward is worse then a Cup of Sack with lime. A |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.125 | the face of the earth, then am I a shotten herring. There | the face of the earth, then am I a shotten Herring: there |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.166 | speak more or less than truth, they are villains and the | speake more or lesse then truth, they are villaines, and the |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.177 | And unbound the rest, and then come in the | And vnbound the rest, and then come in the |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.183 | Jack, then am I no two-legg'd creature. | Iack, then am I no two-legg'd Creature. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.244 | Well, breathe awhile, and then to it again, | Well, breath a-while, and then to't againe: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.250 | plain tale shall put you down. Then did we two set on | plaine Tale shall put you downe. Then did we two, set on |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.257 | then say it was in fight! What trick, what device, what | then say it was in fight. What trick? what deuice? what |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.303 | to make them bleed, and then to beslubber our garments | to make them bleed, and then to beslubber our garments |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.344 | Why, what a rascal art thou then, to praise | Why, what a Rascall art thou then, to prayse |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.354 | Why then, it is like if there come a hot June, | Then 'tis like, if there come a hot Sunne, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.398 | of thy nether lip, that doth warrant me. If then thou be | of thy nether Lippe, that doth warrant me. If then thou be |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.417 | virtue in his looks. If then the tree may be known by the | Vertue in his Lookes. If then the Tree may be knowne by the |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.418 | fruit, as the fruit by the tree, then peremptorily I speak it, | Fruit, as the Fruit by the Tree, then peremptorily I speake it, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.453 | But to say I know more harm in him than in myself were to | But to say, I know more harme in him then in my selfe, were to |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.454 | say more than I know. That he is old, the more the pity, his | say more then I know. That hee is olde (the more the pittie) his |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.458 | sin, then many an old host that I know is damned. If to be | sinne, then many an olde Hoste that I know, is damn'd: if to be |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 II.iv.459 | fat be to be hated, then Pharaoh's lean kine are to be loved. | fat, be to be hated, then Pharaohs leane Kine are to be loued. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.22 | O, then the earth shook to see the heavens on fire, | Oh, then the Earth shooke To see the Heauens on fire, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.110 | And then he runs straight and even. | And then he runnes straight and euen. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.115 | Let me not understand you then, speak it in Welsh. | Let me not vnderstand you then, speake it in Welsh. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.124 | Than one of these same metre ballad-mongers. | Then one of these same Meeter Ballad-mongers: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.155 | Worse than a smoky house. I had rather live | Worse then a smoakie House. I had rather liue |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.157 | Than feed on cates and have him talk to me | Then feede on Cates, and haue him talke to me, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.205 | Nay, if you melt, then will she run mad. | Nay, if thou melt, then will she runne madde. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.219 | Hang in the air a thousand leagues from hence, | Hang in the Ayre a thousand Leagues from thence; |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.227 | Then should you be nothing but musical, | Then would you be nothing but Musicall, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.233 | Then be still. | Then be still. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.246 | As if thou never walkest further than Finsbury. | As if thou neuer walk'st further then Finsbury. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.i.259.1 | And then to horse immediately. | And then to Horse immediately. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.50 | And then I stole all courtesy from heaven, | And then I stole all Courtesie from Heauen, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.73 | More than a little is by much too much. | More then a little, is by much too much. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.94 | As thou art to this hour was Richard then | As thou art to this houre, was Richard then, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.96 | And even as I was then is Percy now. | And euen as I was then, is Percy now: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.99 | Than thou the shadow of succession. | Then thou, the shadow of Succession; |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.ii.103 | And being no more in debt to years than thou | And being no more in debt to yeeres, then thou, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.6 | of heart shortly, and then I shall have no strength to | of heart shortly, and then I shall haue no strength to |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.111 | There's no more faith in thee than in a stewed | There's no more faith in thee then a stu'de |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.112 | prune, nor no more truth in thee than in a drawn fox – | Prune; nor no more truth in thee, then in a drawne Fox: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.165 | have more flesh than another man, and therefore more | haue more flesh then another man, and therefore more |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 III.iii.166 | frailty. You confess then, you picked my pocket? | frailty. You confesse then you pickt my Pocket? |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.8 | In my heart's love hath no man than yourself. | In my hearts loue, hath no man then your Selfe. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.23 | And at the time of my departure thence | And at the time of my departure thence, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.27 | His health was never better worth than now. | His health was neuer better worth then now. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.45 | Seems more than we shall find it. Were it good | Seemes more then we shall finde it. / Were it good, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.79 | Than if the Earl were here. For men must think | Then if the Earle were here: for men must thinke, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.i.111 | No more, no more! Worse than the sun in March, | No more, no more, / Worse then the Sunne in March: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.19 | report of a caliver worse than a struck fowl or a hurt wild | report of a Caliuer, worse then a struck-Foole, or a hurt wilde- |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.21 | with hearts in their bellies no bigger than pins' heads, | with Hearts in their Bellyes no bigger then Pinnes heads, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.30 | dishonourable-ragged than an old fazed ancient. And | dis-honorable ragged, then an old-fac'd Ancient; and |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.ii.52 | Faith, Sir John, 'tis more than time that | 'Faith, Sir Iohn, 'tis more then time that |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iii.2.1 | You give him then advantage. | You giue him then aduantage. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iii.75 | Steps me a little higher than his vow | Step me a little higher then his Vow |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iii.89.2 | Then to the point. | Then to the point. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 IV.iv.16 | And what with Owen Glendower's absence thence, | And what with Owen Glendowers absence thence, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.7 | Then with the losers let it sympathize, | Then with the losers let it sympathize, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.27 | You have not sought it? How comes it, then? | You haue not sought it: how comes it then? |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.44 | Nor claim no further than your new-fallen right, | Nor claime no further, then your new-falne right, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.131 | come on, how then? Can honour set to a leg? No. Or | come on? How then? Can Honour set too a legge? No: or |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.133 | Honour hath no skill in surgery, then? No. What is | Honour hath no skill in Surgerie, then? No. What is |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.i.137 | hear it? No. 'Tis insensible, then? Yea, to the dead. | heare it? No. Is it insensible then? yea, to the dead. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.ii.3.2 | Then are we all undone. | Then we are all vndone. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.ii.58 | Making you ever better than his praise | Making you euer better then his praise, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.2.1 | Then enter Douglas, and Sir Walter Blunt, disguised | Then enter Dowglas, and Sir Walter Blunt. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.3.2 | Know then my name is Douglas, | Know then my name is Dowglas, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.14.2 | Then enter Hotspur | then enters Hotspur. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iii.35 | more weight than mine own bowels. I have led my | more weight then mine owne Bowelles. I haue led my |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.21 | With lustier maintenance than I did look for | With lustier maintenance then I did looke for |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.60.2 | Why, then I see | Why then I see |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.78 | Than those proud titles thou hast won of me. | Then those proud Titles thou hast wonne of me, |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.79 | They wound my thoughts worse than thy sword my flesh. | They wound my thoghts worse, then the sword my flesh: |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.109 | Till then in blood by noble Percy lie. | Till then, in blood, by Noble Percie lye. |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.iv.137 | if I be not Jack Falstaff, then am I a Jack. There is | if I be not Iacke Falstaffe, then am I a Iacke: There is |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.v.25 | Then, brother John of Lancaster, to you | Then Brother Iohn of Lancaster, / To you |
| Henry IV Part 1 | 1H4 V.v.34 | Then this remains, that we divide our power. | Then this remaines: that we diuide our Power. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 induction.39 | Than they have learnt of me. From Rumour's tongues | Then they haue learn'd of Me. From Rumours Tongues, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 induction.40 | They bring smooth comforts false, worse than true wrongs. | They bring smooth-Comforts-false, worse then True-wrongs. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.25 | I spake with one, my lord, that came from thence, | I spake with one (my L.) that came frõ thence, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.32 | More than he haply may retail from me. | More then he (haply) may retaile from me. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.56.1 | Give then such instances of loss? | Giue then such instances of Losse? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.69 | Is apter than thy tongue to tell thy errand. | Is apter then thy Tongue, to tell thy Errand. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.124 | Than did our soldiers, aiming at their safety, | Then did our Soldiers (ayming at their safety) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.125 | Fly from the field. Then was the noble Worcester | Fly from the field. Then was that Noble Worcester |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.171 | More likely to fall in than to get o'er. | More likely to fall in, then to get o're: |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.177 | The stiff-borne action. What hath then befallen, | The stiffe-borne Action: What hath then befalne? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.179 | More than that being which was like to be? | More then that Being, which was like to be? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.i.187 | 'Tis more than time. And, my most noble lord, | 'Tis more then time: And (my most Noble Lord) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.5 | more diseases than he knew for. | more diseases then he knew for. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.8 | to invent anything that intends to laughter more than I | to inuent any thing that tends to laughter, more then I |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.13 | for any other reason than to set me off, why then I have | for any other reason, then to set mee off, why then I haue |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.15 | fitter to be worn in my cap than to wait at my heels. I | fitter to be worne in my cap, then to wait at my heeles. I |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.21 | my hand than he shall get one off his cheek; and yet he | my hand, then he shall get one on his cheeke: yet he |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.31 | than Bardolph. He would not take his bond and | then Bardolfe: he wold not take his Bond & |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.36 | and then stand upon security! The whoreson smoothy- | and then stand vpon Security? The horson smooth- |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.39 | them in honest taking up, then they must stand upon | them in honest Taking-vp, then they must stand vpon |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.76 | to beg than to be on the worst side, were it worse than | to begge, then to be on the worst side, were it worse then |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.82 | I pray you, sir, then set your knighthood and | I pray you (Sir) then set your Knighthood and |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.84 | lie in your throat if you say I am any other than an | lye in your throat, if you say I am any other then an |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.135 | As I was then advised by my learned counsel | As I was then aduised by my learned Councel, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.ii.231 | man can no more separate age and covetousness than 'a | man can no more separate Age and Couetousnesse, then he |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.15 | The question then, Lord Hastings, standeth thus – | The question then (Lord Hastings) standeth thus |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.30 | Much smaller than the smallest of his thoughts, | Much smaller, then the smallest of his Thoughts, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.42 | We first survey the plot, then draw the model, | We first suruey the Plot, then draw the Modell, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.44 | Then must we rate the cost of the erection, | Then must we rate the cost of the Erection, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 I.iii.46 | What do we then but draw anew the model | What do we then, but draw a-new the Modell |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.71 | It is more than for some, my lord, it is for all I | It is more then for some (my Lord) it is for all: all I |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.89 | didst swear to me then, as I was washing thy wound, | didst sweare to me then (as I was washing thy wound) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.92 | wife come in then and call me gossip Quickly? – coming | wife come in then, and cal me gossip Quickly? comming |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.i.110 | throng of words that come with such more than | throng of wordes, that come with such (more then |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.9 | Belike then my appetite was not princely | Belike then, my Appetite was not Princely |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.18 | But that the tennis-court keeper knows better than I, | But that the Tennis-Court-keeper knowes better then I, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.26 | are mightily strengthened. | |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.34 | breeding than thine. | breeding then thine. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.ii.55 | better than thine. Every man would think me an | better then thine: euery man would thinke me an |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.11 | When you were more endeared to it than now, | When you were more endeer'd to it, then now, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.15 | Who then persuaded you to stay at home? | Who then perswaded you to stay at home? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.41 | With others than with him! Let them alone. | With others, then with him. Let them alone: |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iii.54 | Then join you with them like a rib of steel, | Then ioyne you with them, like a Ribbe of Steele, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.10 | Why then, cover, and set them down, and see | Why then couer, and set them downe: and see |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.19 | By the mass, here will be old utis. It will be an | Then here will be old Vtis: it will be an |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.29 | Better than I was – hem! | Better then I was: Hem. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.84 | to me – 'twas no longer ago than Wednesday last, i'good | to me, it was no longer agoe then Wednesday last: |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.86 | our minister was by then – ‘ Neighbour Quickly,’ says | our Minister, was by then: Neighbour Quickly (sayes |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.115 | drink no more than will do me good, for no man's | drinke no more then will doe me good, for no mans |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.117 | Then to you, Mistress Dorothy! I will charge | Then to you (Mistris Dorothie) I will charge |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.174 | Then feed and be fat, my fair Calipolis! | Then feed, and be fat (my faire Calipolis.) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.192 | Then death rock me asleep, abridge my doleful days! | then Death rocke me asleepe, abridge my dolefull dayes: |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.193 | Why then, let grievous, ghastly, gaping wounds | why then let grieuous, gastly, gaping Wounds, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.215 | Agamemnon, and ten times better than the Nine | Agamemnon, and tenne times better then the nine |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.237 | in him than is in a mallet. | in him, then is in a Mallet. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.238 | Why does the Prince love him so, then? | Why doth the Prince loue him so then? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.266 | I love thee better than I love e'er a scurvy young | I loue thee better, then I loue ere a scuruie young |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.282 | A better than thou – I am a gentleman; thou | A better then thou: I am a Gentleman, thou |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.306 | I shall drive you then to confess the | I shall driue you then to confesse the |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 II.iv.307 | wilful abuse, and then I know how to handle you. | wilfull abuse, and then I know how to handle you. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.12 | Than in the perfumed chambers of the great, | Then in the perfum'd Chambers of the Great? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.30 | Deny it to a king? Then happy low, lie down! | Deny it to a King? Then happy Lowe, lye downe, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.35 | Why then, good morrow to you all, my lords. | Why then good-morrow to you all (my Lords:) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.38 | Then you perceive the body of our kingdom | Then you perceiue the Body of our Kingdome, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.64 | Then checked and rated by Northumberland, | (Then check'd, and rated by Northumberland) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.68 | Though then, God knows, I had no such intent, | (Though then, Heauen knowes, I had no such intent, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.85 | That great Northumberland, then false to him, | That great Northumberland, then false to him, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.88.2 | Are these things then necessities? | Are these things then Necessities? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.i.89 | Then let us meet them like necessities, | Then let vs meete them like Necessities; |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.12 | 'A must then to the Inns o' Court shortly. I | Hee must then to the Innes of Court shortly: I |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.15 | You were called ‘ lusty Shallow ’ then, cousin. | You were call'd lustie Shallow then (Cousin.) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.23 | the best of them all at commandment. Then was Jack | the best of them all at commandement. Then was Iacke |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.66 | than with a wife. | then with a Wife. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.115 | go out than I. | goe out, then I. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.184 | Here is two more called than your number. | There is two more called then your number: |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.200 | was then a bona-roba. Doth she hold her own well? | was then a Bona-Roba. Doth she hold her owne well. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.242 | Marry, then, Mouldy, Bullcalf, Feeble, and | Marry then, Mouldie, Bull-calfe, Feeble, and |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.256 | come off and on swifter than he that gibbets on the | come off, and on, swifter then hee that gibbets on the |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.271 | Clement's Inn – I was then Sir Dagonet in Arthur's | Clements Inne, I was then Sir Dagonet in Arthurs |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.297 | hearer than the Turk's tribute. I do remember him at | hearer, then the Turkes Tribute. I doe remember him at |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 III.ii.311 | saw him but once in the tilt-yard, and then he burst his | saw him but once in the Tilt-yard, and then he burst his |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.30.2 | Then, my lord, | Then (my Lord) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.69 | And find our griefs heavier than our offences. | And finde our Griefes heauier then our Offences. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.113 | The King that loved him, as the state stood then, | The King that lou'd him, as the State stood then, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.115 | And then that Henry Bolingbroke and he, | And then, that Henry Bullingbrooke and hee |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.121 | Then, then, when there was nothing could have stayed | Then, then, when there was nothing could haue stay'd |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.125 | Then threw he down himself and all their lives | Then threw hee downe himselfe, and all their Liues, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.129 | The Earl of Hereford was reputed then | The Earle of Hereford was reputed then |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.131 | Who knows on whom Fortune would then have smiled? | Who knowes, on whom Fortune would then haue smil'd? |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.137 | And blessed, and graced, indeed more than the King. | And bless'd, and grac'd, and did more then the King. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.152 | Our battle is more full of names than yours, | Our Battaile is more full of Names then yours, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.155 | Then reason will our hearts should be as good. | Then Reason will, our hearts should be as good. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.156 | Say you not then our offer is compelled. | Say you not then, our Offer is compell'd. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.166 | Then take, my lord of Westmorland, this schedule, | Then take (my Lord of Westmerland) this Schedule, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.i.225 | Your grace of York, in God's name then, set forward. | Your Grace of Yorke, in heauen's name then forward. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.ii.8 | Than now to see you here an iron man, | Then now to see you heere an Iron man |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.ii.90 | For then both parties nobly are subdued, | For then both parties nobly are subdu'd, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.5 | Well then, Colevile is your name, a knight is | Well then, Colleuile is your Name, a Knight is |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.27 | When everything is ended, then you come. | When euery thing is ended, then you come. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.42 | It was more of his courtesy than your | It was more of his Courtesie, then your |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.56 | Let it shine, then. | Let it shine then. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.66 | You should have won them dearer than you have. | You should haue wonne them dearer then you haue. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.84 | Shall better speak of you than you deserve. | Shall better speake of you, then you deserue. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.85 | I would you had the wit; 'twere better than | I would you had but the wit: 'twere better then |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.92 | male green-sickness; and then when they marry they | Male Greene-sicknesse: and then, when they marry, they |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iii.108 | then the vital commoners, and inland petty spirits, | then the Vitall Commoners, and in-land pettie Spirits, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.iv.23 | Than all thy brothers; cherish it, my boy, | Then all thy Brothers: cherish it (my Boy) |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.111 | Then get thee gone, and dig my grave thyself, | Then get thee gone, and digge my graue thy selfe, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.146 | Than as your honour and as your renown, | Then as your Honour, and as your Renowne, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.202 | Yet though thou standest more sure than I could do, | Yet, though thou stand'st more sure, then I could do, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.221 | Then plain and right must my possession be, | Then plaine and right must my possession be; |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 IV.v.222 | Which I with more than with a common pain | Which I, with more, then with a Common paine, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.i.27 | i'th' court is better than a penny in purse. Use his men | i'th Court, is better then a penny in purse. Vse his men |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.i.29 | No worse than they are backbitten, sir, for they | No worse then they are bitten, sir: For they |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.13 | Than I have drawn it in my fantasy. | Then I haue drawne it in my fantasie. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.17 | How many nobles then should hold their places | How many Nobles then, should hold their places, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.53 | And wear it in my heart. Why then, be sad; | And weare it in my heart. Why then be sad, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.55 | Than a joint burden laid upon us all. | Then a ioynt burthen, laid vpon vs all. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.73 | I then did use the person of your father; | I then did vse the Person of your Father: |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.74 | The image of his power lay then in me | The Image of his power, lay then in me, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.ii.96 | And then imagine me taking your part, | And then imagine me, taking your part, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.4 | cousin Silence – and then to bed. | Cosin Silence, and then to bed. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.78 | Is't so? Why then, say an old man can do | Is't so? Why then say an old man can do |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.106 | Then, Pistol, lay thy head in Furies' lap. | Then Pistoll lay thy head in Furies lappe. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.iii.108 | Why then, lament therefore. | Why then Lament therefore. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.v.57 | For thee thrice wider than for other men. | For thee, thrice wider then for other men. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 V.v.66 | Till then I banish thee, on pain of death, | Till then, I banish thee, on paine of death, |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 epilogue.1 | First, my fear; then, my curtsy; last, my speech. | FIRST, my Feare: then, my Curtsie: last, my Speech. |
| Henry IV Part 2 | 2H4 epilogue.22 | me. If the gentlemen will not, then the gentlemen do | me, if the Gentlemen will not, then the Gentlemen do |
| Henry V | H5 I.chorus.5 | Then should the warlike Harry, like himself, | Then should the Warlike Harry, like himselfe, |
| Henry V | H5 I.i.74 | Than cherishing th' exhibiters against us; | Then cherishing th'exhibiters against vs: |
| Henry V | H5 I.i.80 | Than ever at one time the clergy yet | Then euer at one time the Clergie yet |
| Henry V | H5 I.i.95 | Then go we in to know his embassy; | Then goe we in, to know his Embassie: |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.33 | Then hear me, gracious sovereign, and you peers, | Then heare me gracious Soueraign, & you Peers, |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.50 | Established then this law: to wit, no female | Establisht then this Law; to wit, No Female |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.54 | Then doth it well appear the Salic law | Then doth it well appeare, the Salike Law |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.94 | Than amply to imbare their crooked titles | Then amply to imbarre their crooked Titles, |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.155 | She hath been then more feared than harmed, my liege; | She hath bin thẽ more fear'd thẽ harm'd, my Liege: |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.168 | Then with Scotland first begin.’ | then with Scotland first begin. |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.173 | To tame and havoc more than she can eat. | To tame and hauocke more then she can eate. |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.174 | It follows then the cat must stay at home; | It followes then, the Cat must stay at home, |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.201 | Their heavy burdens at his narrow gate, | Their heauy burthens at his narrow gate: |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.246.2 | Thus then, in few: | Thus than in few: |
| Henry V | H5 I.ii.297 | When thousands weep more than did laugh at it. | When thousands weepe more then did laugh at it. |
| Henry V | H5 II.chorus.37 | And thence to France shall we convey you safe | And thence to France shall we conuey you safe, |
| Henry V | H5 II.chorus.41 | But till the King come forth, and not till then, | But till the King come forth, and not till then, |
| Henry V | H5 II.i.99 | friends: an thou wilt not, why then be enemies with me | frends, and thou wilt not, why then be enemies with me |
| Henry V | H5 II.i.111 | Well then, that's the humour of't. | Well, then that the humor of't. |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.26 | Than is your majesty. There's not, I think, a subject | Then is your Maiesty; there's not I thinke a subiect |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.34 | Sooner than quittance of desert and merit | Sooner then quittance of desert and merit, |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.66 | Then, Richard Earl of Cambridge, there is yours; | Then Richard Earle of Cambridge, there is yours: |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.93 | Than Cambridge is, hath likewise sworn. But O, | Then Cambridge is, hath likewise sworne. But O, |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.152 | And I repent my fault more than my death, | And I repent my fault more then my death, |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.163 | Than I do at this hour joy o'er myself, | Then I do at this houre ioy ore my selfe, |
| Henry V | H5 II.ii.189 | Then forth, dear countrymen! Let us deliver | Then forth, deare Countreymen: Let vs deliuer |
| Henry V | H5 II.iii.24 | then I felt to his knees, and so up'ard and up'ard, and | then I felt to his knees, and so vp-peer'd, and vpward, and |
| Henry V | H5 II.iii.35 | then he was rheumatic, and talked of the Whore of | then hee was rumatique, and talk'd of the Whore of |
| Henry V | H5 II.iv.2 | And more than carefully it us concerns | And more then carefully it vs concernes, |
| Henry V | H5 II.iv.11 | It fits us then to be as provident | It fits vs then to be as prouident, |
| Henry V | H5 II.iv.24 | No, with no more than if we heard that England | No, with no more, then if we heard that England |
| Henry V | H5 II.iv.44 | The enemy more mighty than he seems. | The Enemie more mightie then he seemes, |
| Henry V | H5 II.iv.93 | Edward the Third, he bids you then resign | Edward the third; he bids you then resigne |
| Henry V | H5 III.chorus.3 | Than that of thought. Suppose that you have seen | then that of Thought. / Suppose, that you haue seene |
| Henry V | H5 III.i.6 | Then imitate the action of the tiger; | Then imitate the action of the Tyger: |
| Henry V | H5 III.i.9 | Then lend the eye a terrible aspect; | Then lend the Eye a terrible aspect: |
| Henry V | H5 III.ii.71 | of the Roman disciplines, than is a puppy-dog. | of the Roman disciplines, then is a Puppy-dog. |
| Henry V | H5 III.ii.122 | than is meant, Captain Macmorris, peradventure I shall | then is meant, Captaine Mackmorrice, peraduenture I shall |
| Henry V | H5 III.iii.15 | What is it then to me, if impious war, | What is it then to me, if impious Warre, |
| Henry V | H5 III.v.39 | More sharper than your swords, hie to the field! | More sharper then your Swords, high to the field: |
| Henry V | H5 III.vi.51 | Why then, rejoice therefore! | Why then reioyce therefore. |
| Henry V | H5 III.vi.66 | Why, 'tis a gull, a fool, a rogue, that now and then | Why 'tis a Gull, a Foole, a Rogue, that now and then |
| Henry V | H5 III.vi.112 | Well then, I know thee: what shall I know | Well then, I know thee: what shall I know |
| Henry V | H5 III.vi.118 | Advantage is a better soldier than rashness. Tell him | Aduantage is a better Souldier then rashnesse. Tell him, |
| Henry V | H5 III.vi.145 | Almost no better than so many French; | Almost no better then so many French; |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.17 | of his hoof is more musical than the pipe of Hermes. | of his hoofe, is more Musicall then the Pipe of Hermes |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.41 | Then did they imitate that which I composed | Then did they imitate that which I compos'd |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.50 | O, then belike she was old and gentle, and you | O then belike she was old and gentle, and you |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.54 | Be warned by me, then: they that ride so, and | Be warn'd by me then: they that ride so, and |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.102 | than you. | then you. |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.145 | leaving their wits with their wives; and then, give them | leauing their Wits with their Wiues: and then giue them |
| Henry V | H5 III.vii.149 | Then shall we find tomorrow they have only | Then shall we finde to morrow, they haue only |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.15 | Were better than a churlish turf of France. | Were better then a churlish turfe of France. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.32 | And then I would no other company. | And then I would no other company. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.43 | Then you are a better than the King. | Then you are a better then the King. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.60 | The figo for thee then! | The Figo for thee then. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.104 | affections are higher mounted than ours, yet when they | affections are higher mounted then ours, yet when they |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.117 | Then I would he were here alone; so should he be | Then I would he were here alone; so should he be |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.125 | That's more than we know. | That's more then we know. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.126 | Ay, or more than we should seek after; for we know | I, or more then wee should seeke after; for wee know |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.168 | and where they would be safe, they perish. Then if | and where they would bee safe, they perish. Then if |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.170 | damnation than he was before guilty of those impieties | damnation, then hee was before guiltie of those Impieties, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.192 | You pay him then! That's a perilous shot out | You pay him then: that's a perillous shot out |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.204 | it in my bonnet: then, if ever thou dar'st acknowledge it, | it in my Bonnet: Then if euer thou dar'st acknowledge it, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.235 | Of mortal griefs than do thy worshippers? | Of mortall griefes, then doe thy worshippers. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.242 | Than they in fearing. | Then they in fearing. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.i.290 | Than from it issued forced drops of blood. | Then from it issued forced drops of blood. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.ii.11 | How shall we then behold their natural tears? | How shall we then behold their naturall teares? |
| Henry V | H5 IV.ii.32 | And all is done. Then let the trumpets sound | And all is done: then let the Trumpets sound |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.8 | Then joyfully, my noble Lord of Bedford, | Then ioyfully, my Noble Lord of Bedford, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.47 | Then will he strip his sleeve, and show his scars, | Then will he strip his sleeue, and shew his skarres: |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.51 | What feats he did that day. Then shall our names, | What feats he did that day. Then shall our Names, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.77 | Which likes me better than to wish us one. | Which likes me better, then to wish vs one. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.91 | Bid them achieve me, and then sell my bones. | Bid them atchieue me, and then sell my bones. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.104 | Mark then abounding valour in our English, | Marke then abounding valour in our English: |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iii.120 | As, if God please, they shall – my ransom then | As if God please, they shall; my Ransome then |
| Henry V | H5 IV.iv.69 | more valour than this roaring devil i'th' old play, that | more valour, then this roaring diuell i'th olde play, that |
| Henry V | H5 IV.v.15 | Whilst by a slave, no gentler than my dog, | Whilst a base slaue, no gentler then my dogge, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.vi.17 | Tarry, sweet soul, for mine, then fly abreast, | Tarry (sweet soule) for mine, then flye a-brest: |
| Henry V | H5 IV.vi.37 | Then every soldier kill his prisoners! | Then euery souldiour kill his Prisoners, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.vii.65 | His eyes are humbler than they used to be. | His eyes are humbler then they vs'd to be. |
| Henry V | H5 IV.vii.71 | To book our dead, and then to bury them, | To booke our dead, and then to bury them, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.vii.88 | Then call we this the field of Agincourt, | Then call we this the field of Agincourt, |
| Henry V | H5 IV.vii.140 | Then keep thy vow, sirrah, when thou | Then keepe thy vow sirrah, when thou |
| Henry V | H5 IV.viii.4 | more good toward you, peradventure, than is in your | more good toward you peraduenture, then is in your |
| Henry V | H5 IV.viii.124 | And then to Calais, and to England then, | And then to Callice, and to England then, |
| Henry V | H5 V.chorus.44 | Then brook abridgement, and your eyes advance, | Then brooke abridgement, and your eyes aduance, |
| Henry V | H5 V.i.7 | know to be no petter than a fellow, look you now, of no | know to be no petter then a fellow, looke you now, of no |
| Henry V | H5 V.i.12 | him once again, and then I will tell him a little piece of | him once againe, and then I will tell him a little piece of |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.29 | Since, then, my office hath so far prevailed | Since then my Office hath so farre preuayl'd, |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.75.2 | Well then, the peace | Well then: the Peace |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.127 | ‘ I love you:’ then if you urge me farther than to say, | I loue you; then if you vrge me farther, then to say, |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.166 | say'st thou then to my love? Speak, my fair, and fairly, | say'st thou then to my Loue? speake my faire, and fairely, |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.174 | and, Kate, when France is mine, and I am yours, then | and Kate, when France is mine, and I am yours; then |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.181 | le possession de moi, – let me see, what then? Saint Denis | le possession de moy. (Let mee see, what then? Saint Dennis |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.254 | Then I will kiss your lips, Kate. | Then I will kisse your Lippes, Kate. |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.273 | more eloquence in a sugar touch of them than in the | more eloquence in a Sugar touch of them, then in the |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.275 | persuade Harry of England than a general petition of | perswade Harry of England, then a generall Petition of |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.291 | her, then, being a maid yet rosed over with the virgin | her then, being a Maid, yet ros'd ouer with the Virgin |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.297 | They are then excused, my lord, when they | They are then excus'd, my Lord, when they |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.299 | Then, good my lord, teach your cousin to | Then good my Lord, teach your Cousin to |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.304 | blind, though they have their eyes, and then they | blinde, though they haue their eyes, and then they |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.326 | His daughter first, and then, in sequel, all, | His Daughter first; and in sequele, all, |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.337 | I pray you then, in love and dear alliance, | I pray you then, in loue and deare allyance, |
| Henry V | H5 V.ii.365 | Then shall I swear to Kate, and you to me, | Then shall I sweare to Kate, and you to me, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.11 | His arms spread wider than a dragon's wings; | His Armes spred wider then a Dragons Wings: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.14 | Than midday sun fierce bent against their faces. | Then mid-day Sunne, fierce bent against their faces. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.40 | More than God or religious churchmen may. | More then God or Religious Church-men may. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.56 | Than Julius Caesar or bright – | Then Iulius Casar, or bright---- |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.120 | More than three hours the fight continued, | More then three houres the fight continued: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.141 | Is Talbot slain? Then I will slay myself, | Is Talbot slaine then? I will slay my selfe, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.i.169 | And then I will proclaim young Henry king. | And then I will proclayme young Henry King. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.40 | The walls they'll tear down than forsake the siege. | The Walls they'le teare downe, then forsake the Siege. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.102 | Then come, a God's name; I fear no woman. | Then come a Gods name, I feare no woman. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.116 | Then will I think upon a recompense. | Then will I thinke vpon a recompence. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.122 | He may mean more than we poor men do know; | He may meane more then we poor men do know, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.ii.141 | Thou with an eagle art inspired then. | Thou with an Eagle art inspired then. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iii.10 | We do no otherwise than we are willed. | We doe no otherwise then wee are will'd. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iii.85 | This cardinal's more haughty than the devil. | This Cardinall's more haughtie then the Deuill. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iii.89 | See the coast cleared, and then we will depart. | See the Coast clear'd, and then we will depart. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.12 | And thence discover how with most advantage | And thence discouer, how with most aduantage |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.33 | Rather than I would be so pilled esteemed. | Rather then I would be so pil'd esteem'd: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.44 | Then broke I from the officers that led me, | Then broke I from the Officers that led me, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.iv.111 | And then we'll try what these dastard Frenchmen dare. | And then wee'le try what these dastard Frenchmen dare. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.v.1.2 | the Dauphin and driveth him. Then enter Joan la | the Dolphin, and driueth him: Then enter Ioane de |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.v.1.4 | Then enter Talbot | Then enter Talbot. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.v.15.1 | A short alarum. Then she enters the town with | A short Alarum: then enter the Towne with |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.vi.22 | Than Rhodope's of Memphis ever was. | Then Rhodophe's or Memphis euer was. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 I.vi.25 | Than the rich-jewelled coffer of Darius, | Then the rich-iewel'd Coffer of Darius, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.i.13 | Embrace we then this opportunity, | Embrace we then this opportunitie, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.i.45 | More venturous or desperate than this. | More venturous, or desperate then this. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.i.71 | Then how or which way should they first break in? | Then how, or which way, should they first breake in? |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.44 | Is it even so? Nay, then I see our wars | Is it euen so? Nay, then I see our Warres |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.48 | Ne'er trust me then; for when a world of men | Ne're trust me then: for when a World of men |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.54 | No, truly, 'tis more than manners will; | No,truly, 'tis more then manners will: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.ii.57 | Well, then, alone, since there's no remedy, | Well then, alone (since there's no remedie) |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.32 | If thou be he, then art thou prisoner. | If thou be he, then art thou Prisoner. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.48 | Then have I substance too. | Then haue I substance too. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.67 | I find thou art no less than fame hath bruited, | I finde thou art no lesse then Fame hath bruited, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iii.68 | And more than may be gathered by thy shape. | And more then may be gathered by thy shape. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.5 | Then say at once if I maintained the truth; | Then say at once, if I maintain'd the Truth: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.10 | Judge you, my Lord of Warwick, then between us. | Iudge you, my Lord of Warwicke, then betweene vs. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.18 | Good faith, I am no wiser than a daw. | Good faith I am no wiser then a Daw. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.46 | Then, for the truth and plainness of the case, | Then for the truth, and plainnesse of the Case, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.98 | And that I'll prove on better men than Somerset, | And that Ile proue on better men then Somerset, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.iv.119 | And if thou be not then created York, | And if thou be not then created Yorke, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.10 | Weak shoulders, overborne with burdening grief, | Weake Shoulders, ouer-borne with burthening Griefe, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.21 | Enough; my soul shall then be satisfied. | Enough: my Soule shall then be satisfied. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.26 | And even since then hath Richard been obscured, | And euen since then, hath Richard beene obscur'd, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.84 | Thy father, Earl of Cambridge then, derived | Thy Father, Earle of Cambridge, then deriu'd |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.100 | Was nothing less than bloody tyranny. | Was nothing lesse then bloody Tyranny. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.109 | Thou dost then wrong me, as that slaughterer doth | Thou do'st then wrong me, as yt slaughterer doth, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 II.v.121 | Will see his burial better than his life. | Will see his Buryall better then his Life. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.19 | Lascivious, wanton, more than well beseems | Lasciuious, wanton, more then well beseemes |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.34 | More than I do, except I be provoked? | More then I doe? except I be prouok'd. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.1.52 | Roam thither then. | Roame thither then. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.118 | Then be at peace, except ye thirst for blood. | Then be at peace, except ye thirst for blood. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.i.171 | Stoop then and set your knee against my foot; | Stoope then, and set your Knee against my Foot, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.35 | And then do execution on the watch. | And then doe execution on the Watch. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.62 | Belike your lordship takes us then for fools, | Belike your Lordship takes vs then for fooles, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.100 | Then be it so. Heavens keep old Bedford safe! | Then be it so: Heauens keepe old Bedford safe. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.ii.128 | And then depart to Paris to the King, | And then depart to Paris, to the King, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.16 | Employ thee then, sweet virgin, for our good. | Employ thee then, sweet Virgin, for our good. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.17 | Then thus it must be; this doth Joan devise: | Then thus it must be, this doth Ioane deuise: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.55 | Should grieve thee more than streams of foreign gore. | Should grieue thee more then streames of forraine gore. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.66 | Who then but English Henry will be lord, | Who then, but English Henry, will be Lord, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iii.74 | See then, thou fightest against thy countrymen, | See then, thou fight'st against thy Countreymen, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 III.iv.45 | And after meet you sooner than you would. | And after meete you, sooner then you would. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.27 | Then judge, great lords, if I have done amiss, | Then iudge (great Lords) if I haue done amisse: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.39 | He then that is not furnished in this sort | He then, that is not furnish'd in this sort, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.68 | Why then, Lord Talbot there shall talk with him | Why then Lord Talbot there shal talk with him, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.73 | Then gather strength and march unto him straight; | Then gather strength, and march vnto him straight: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.88 | First let me know, and then I'll answer you. | First let me know, and then Ile answer you. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.117 | And then your highness shall command a peace. | And then your Highnesse shall command a Peace. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.119 | Betwixt ourselves let us decide it then. | Betwixt our selues let vs decide it then. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.159 | Than I am able to instruct or teach; | Then I am able to instruct or teach: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.171 | From thence to England, where I hope ere long | From thence to England, where I hope ere long |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.i.186 | Than yet can be imagined or supposed. | Then yet can be imagin'd or suppos'd: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.ii.48 | If we be English deer, be then in blood; | If we be English Deere, be then in blood, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.iii.7 | Two mightier troops than that the Dauphin led, | Two mightier Troopes then that the Dolphin led, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.iii.34 | Then God take mercy on brave Talbot's soul | Then God take mercy on braue Talbots soule, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.iv.45 | If he be dead, brave Talbot, then adieu! | If he be dead, braue Talbot then adieu. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.21 | Then let me stay, and, father, do you fly. | Then let me stay, and Father doe you flye: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.33 | Rather than life preserved with infamy. | Rather then Life, preseru'd with Infamie. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.35 | Ay, rather than I'll shame my mother's womb. | I, rather then Ile shame my Mothers Wombe. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.44 | If death be so apparent, then both fly. | If Death be so apparant, then both flye. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.49 | Than can yourself yourself in twain divide. | Then can your selfe, your selfe in twaine diuide: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.v.52 | Then here I take my leave of thee, fair son, | Then here I take my leaue of thee, faire Sonne, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vi.12 | Of bold-faced victory. Then leaden age, | Of bold-fac't Victorie. Then Leaden Age, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vi.52 | Then talk no more of flight; it is no boot; | Then talke no more of flight, it is no boot, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vi.54 | Then follow thou thy desperate sire of Crete, | Then follow thou thy desp'rate Syre of Creet, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 IV.vii.28 | ‘ Had Death been French, then Death had died today.’ | Had Death bene French, then Death had dyed to day. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.i.30 | Then I perceive that will be verified | Then I perceiue, that will be verified |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.ii.4 | Then march to Paris, royal Charles of France, | Then march to Paris Royall Charles of France, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.ii.21 | Then on, my lords; and France be fortunate! | Then on my Lords, and France be fortunate. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.22 | Then take my soul – my body, soul, and all, | Then take my soule; my body, soule, and all, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.ii.30.2 | fight hand to hand. York then fights with Joan la | fight hand to hand. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.82 | Then how can Margaret be thy paramour? | Then how can Margaret be thy Paramour? |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.105 | And then I need not crave his courtesy. | And then I need not craue his curtesie. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.128 | Then call our captains and our colours forth! | Then call our Captaines and our Colours forth, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iii.167 | (To them) I'll over then to England with this news | Ile ouer then to England with this newes. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.60 | Then, Joan, discover thine infirmity, | Then Ione discouer thine infirmity, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.63 | Murder not then the fruit within my womb, | Murther not then the Fruite within my Wombe, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.86 | Then lead me hence; with whom I leave my curse: | Then lead me hence: with whom I leaue my curse. |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.133 | Must he be then as shadow of himself? | Must he be then as shadow of himselfe? |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.139 | With more than half the Gallian territories, | With more then halfe the Gallian Territories, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.iv.169 | Then swear allegiance to his majesty: | Then sweare Allegeance to his Maiesty, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.28 | How shall we then dispense with that contract | How shall we then dispense with that contract, |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.36 | Why, what, I pray, is Margaret more than that? | Why what (I pray) is Margaret more then that? |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.56 | Than to be dealt in by attorneyship; | Then to be dealt in by Atturney-ship: |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.71 | More than in women commonly is seen, | (More then in women commonly is seene) |
| Henry VI Part 1 | 1H6 V.v.77 | Then yield, my lords, and here conclude with me | Then yeeld my Lords,and heere conclude with mee, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.1.1 | Flourish of trumpets, then hautboys. Enter the King, | Flourish of Trumpets: Then Hoboyes. Enter King, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.19 | Than this kind kiss. O Lord that lends me life, | Then this kinde kisse: O Lord, that lends me life, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.163 | Why should he then protect our sovereign, | Why should he then protect our Soueraigne? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.174 | Than all the princes' in the land beside. | Then all the Princes in the Land beside, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.184 | More like a soldier than a man o'th' church, | More like a Souldier then a man o'th' Church, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.206 | Then let's make haste away, and look unto the main. | Then lets make hast away, / And looke vnto the maine. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.246 | Then, York, be still awhile till time do serve; | Then Yorke be still a-while, till time do serue: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.i.252 | Then will I raise aloft the milk-white rose, | Then will I raise aloft the Milke-white-Rose, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.ii.12 | What, is't too short? I'll lengthen it with mine; | What, is't too short? Ile lengthen it with mine, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.ii.41 | Nay, Eleanor, then must I chide outright: | Nay Elinor, then must I chide outright: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.2 | Lord Protector will come this way by and by, and then | Lord Protector will come this way by and by, and then |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.69 | But can do more in England than the King. | But can doe more in England then the King. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.71 | Cannot do more in England than the Nevils; | Cannot doe more in England then the Neuils: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.76 | More like an empress than Duke Humphrey's wife. | More like an Empresse, then Duke Humphreyes Wife: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.84 | Was better worth than all my father's lands, | Was better worth then all my Fathers Lands, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.102 | Then let him be denayed the Regentship. | Then let him be denay'd the Regent-ship. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iii.120 | Resign it then, and leave thine insolence. | Resigne it then, and leaue thine insolence. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iv.22.3 | te' etc. It thunders and lightens terribly; then the | te, &c. It Thunders and Lightens terribly: then the |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iv.36 | Than where castles mounted stand. | Then where Castles mounted stand. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 I.iv.68 | Than where castles mounted stand. | Then where Castles mounted stand. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.14 | That mounts no higher than a bird can soar. | That mounts no higher then a Bird can sore: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.27 | No malice, sir; no more than well becomes | No mallice Sir, no more then well becomes |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.112 | Why then, thou knowest what colour jet is of? | Why then, thou know'st what Colour Iet is of? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.124 | Then, Saunder, sit there, the lyingest knave | Then Saunder, sit there, / The lying'st Knaue |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.136 | Then send for one presently. | Then send for one presently. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.i.158 | But you have done more miracles than I; | But you haue done more Miracles then I: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.ii.9 | Then thus: | Then thus: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.ii.53 | What plain proceedings is more plain than this? | What plaine proceedings is more plain then this? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.ii.59 | Then, father Salisbury, kneel we together, | Then Father Salisbury, kneele we together, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.6 | From thence unto the place of execution. | From thence, vnto the place of Execution: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.27 | Than when thou wert Protector to thy King. | Then when thou wert Protector to thy King. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.57 | Or more afraid to fight, than is the appellant, | Or more afraid to fight, then is the Appellant, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iii.84 | Thump? Then see thou thump thy master well. | Thumpe? Then see thou thumpe thy Master well. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iv.97 | And shall I then be used reproachfully? | And shall I then be vs'd reproachfully? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 II.iv.100 | Sheriff, farewell, and better than I fare, | Sherife farewell, and better then I fare, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.23 | Me seemeth then it is no policy, | Me seemeth then, it is no Pollicie, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.74 | Ah, what's more dangerous than this fond affiance? | Ah what's more dangerous, then this fond affiance? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.96 | Unless thou wert more loyal than thou art. | Vnlesse thou wert more loyall then thou art: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.120 | I say no more than truth, so help me God! | I say no more then truth, so helpe me God. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.156 | Sharp Buckingham unburdens with his tongue | Sharpe Buckingham vnburthens with his tongue, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.183 | Far truer spoke than meant. I lose indeed; | Farre truer spoke then meant: I lose indeede, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.201 | For what's more miserable than discontent? | For what's more miserable then Discontent? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.231 | Believe me, lords, were none more wise than I – | Beleeue me Lords, were none more wise then I, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.242 | More than mistrust, that shows him worthy death. | More then mistrust, that shewes him worthy death. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.252 | Madam, 'tis true; and were't not madness then | Madame 'tis true: and wer't not madnesse then, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.298 | Than bring a burden of dishonour home, | Then bring a burthen of dis-honour home, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.302 | Nay then, this spark will prove a raging fire | Nay then, this sparke will proue a raging fire, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.306 | Might happily have proved far worse than his. | Might happily haue prou'd farre worse then his. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.307 | What, worse than naught? Nay, then a shame take all! | What, worse then naught? nay, then a shame take all. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.318 | Then, noble York, take thou this task in hand. | Then, Noble Yorke, take thou this Taske in hand. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.339 | My brain, more busy than the labouring spider, | My Brayne, more busie then the laboring Spider, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.i.380 | Why, then from Ireland come I with my strength, | Why then from Ireland come I with my strength, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.21 | Than from true evidence of good esteem, | Then from true euidence, of good esteeme, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.73 | Be woe for me, more wretched than he is. | Be woe for me, more wretched then he is. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.79 | Why, then, Dame Margaret was ne'er thy joy. | Why then Dame Elianor was neere thy ioy. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.88 | What did I then, but cursed the gentle gusts | What did I then? But curst the gentle gusts, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.99 | Because thy flinty heart, more hard than they, | Because thy flinty heart more hard then they, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.133 | And comment then upon his sudden death. | And comment then vpon his sodaine death. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.135.1 | Exeunt Warwick, then Salisbury | |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.186 | Then you belike suspect these noblemen | Than you belike suspect these Noblemen, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.232 | What stronger breastplate than a heart untainted! | What stronger Brest-plate then a heart vntainted? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.320 | And even now my burdened heart would break, | And euen now my burthen'd heart would breake |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.322 | Gall, worse than gall, the daintiest that they taste! | Gall, worse then Gall, the daintiest that they taste: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.355 | Loather a hundred times to part than die. | Loather a hundred times to part then dye; |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.359 | 'Tis not the land I care for, wert thou thence; | 'Tis not the Land I care for, wer't thou thence, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.399 | And then it lived in sweet Elysium. | And then it liu'd in sweete Elizium. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.ii.401 | From thee to die were torture more than death. | From thee to dye, were torture more then death: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 III.iii.12 | Alive again? Then show me where he is; | Aliue againe? Then shew me where he is, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.108 | Than Bargulus, the strong Illyrian pirate. | Then Bargulus the strong Illyrian Pyrate. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.127 | Stoop to the block than these knees bow to any | Stoope to the blocke, then these knees bow to any, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.130 | Than stand uncovered to the vulgar groom. | Then stand vncouer'd to the Vulgar Groome. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.i.132 | More can I bear than you dare execute. | More can I beare, then you dare execute. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.3 | They have the more need to sleep now then. | They haue the more neede to sleepe now then. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.20 | brave mind than a hard hand. | braue minde, then a hard hand. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.26 | Then is sin struck down like an ox, and iniquity's | Then is sin strucke downe like an Oxe, and iniquities |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.60 | Be brave then; for your captain is brave, and vows | Be braue then, for your Captaine is Braue, and Vowes |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.86 | Nay, then he is a conjurer. | Nay then he is a Coniurer. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.157 | than that, he can speak French; and therefore he is a | then that, he can speake French, and therefore hee is a |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.161 | enemies; go to, then, I ask but this: can he that speaks | enemies: go too then, I ask but this: Can he that speaks |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ii.179 | But then are we in order when we are most out | But then are we in order, when we are most out |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.iv.12 | Rather than bloody war shall cut them short, | Rather then bloody Warre shall cut them short, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.iv.54 | Then linger not, my lord. Away! Take horse! | Then linger not my Lord, away, take horse. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.v.1.1 | Enter Lord Scales upon the Tower, walking. Then | Enter Lord Scales vpon the Tower walking. Then |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vi.6 | other than Lord Mortimer. | other then Lord Mortimer. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vi.13 | Come then, let's go fight with them. But first, | Come, then let's go fight with them: / But first, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.1.2 | Then enter Jack Cade with his company | Then enter Iacke Cade, with his Company. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.7 | Mass, 'twill be sore law then, for he was | Masse 'twill be sore Law then, for he was |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.14 | Then we are like to have biting statutes, | Then we are like to haue biting Statutes |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.46 | cloak, when honester men than thou go in their hose and | Cloake, when honester men then thou go in their Hose and |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.83 | Ye shall have a hempen caudle then, and the help of | Ye shall haue a hempen Candle then, & the help of |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.vii.103 | and then break into his son-in-law's house, Sir James | and then breake into his Sonne in Lawes house, Sir Iames |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.viii.28 | burdens, take your houses over your heads, ravish your | burthens, take your houses ouer your heads, rauish your |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.viii.47 | Than you should stoop unto a Frenchman's mercy. | Then you should stoope vnto a Frenchmans mercy. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ix.2 | And could command no more content than I? | And could command no more content then I? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.ix.13 | Then, heaven, set ope thy everlasting gates | Then heauen set ope thy euerlasting gates, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 IV.x.30 | I know thee not; why then should I betray thee? | I know thee not, why then should I betray thee? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.28 | I am far better born than is the King, | I am farre better borne then is the king: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.44 | Then, Buckingham, I do dismiss my powers. | Then Buckingham I do dismisse my Powres. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.60 | Then what intends these forces thou dost bring? | Then what intends these Forces thou dost bring? |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.88 | Then, York, unloose thy long-imprisoned thoughts | Then Yorke vnloose thy long imprisoned thoughts, |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.140 | And if words will not, then our weapons shall. | And if words will not, then our Weapons shal. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.199 | Than any thou canst conjure up today; | Then any thou canst coniure vp to day: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.i.215 | Foul stigmatic, that's more than thou canst tell. | Foule stygmaticke that's more then thou canst tell. |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.ii.16 | Then nobly, York; 'tis for a crown thou fightest. | Then nobly Yorke, 'tis for a Crown thou fightst: |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.ii.64 | But then Aeneas bare a living load, | But then, Aeneas bare a liuing loade; |
| Henry VI Part 2 | 2H6 V.ii.78 | If you be ta'en, we then should see the bottom | If you be tane, we then should see the bottome |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.28 | Assist me then, sweet Warwick, and I will; | Assist me then, sweet Warwick, and I will, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.43 | Then leave me not; my lords, be resolute; | Then leaue me not, my Lords be resolute, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.97 | Than drops of blood were in my father's veins. | Then drops of bloud were in my Fathers Veines. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.130 | My title's good, and better far than his. | My Title's good, and better farre then his. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.136 | What then? | What then? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.137 | An if he may, then am I lawful king; | And if he may, then am I lawfull King: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.224 | Rather than have made that savage Duke thine heir | Rather then haue made that sauage Duke thine Heire, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.i.262 | I'll see your grace; till then I'll follow her. | Ile see your Grace: till then, Ile follow her. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.ii.26 | Then, seeing 'twas he that made you to depose, | Then seeing 'twas he that made you to depose, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.ii.58 | With powerful policy strengthen themselves, | With powrefull Pollicie strengthen themselues, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iii.23 | Then let my father's blood open it again; | Then let my Fathers blood open it againe, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iii.45 | Then let me die, for now thou hast no cause. | Then let me dye, for now thou hast no cause. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iv.111 | She-wolf of France, but worse than wolves of France, | Shee-Wolfe of France, / But worse then Wolues of France, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iv.112 | Whose tongue more poisons than the adder's tooth! | Whose Tongue more poysons then the Adders Tooth: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 I.iv.155 | O, ten times more, than tigers of Hyrcania. | Oh, tenne times more then Tygers of Hyrcania. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.42 | You love the breeder better than the male. | You loue the Breeder better then the Male. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.81 | Nor can my tongue unload my heart's great burden; | Nor can my tongue vnloade my hearts great burthen, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.86 | Tears then for babes, blows and revenge for me! | Teares then for Babes; Blowes, and Reuenge for mee. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.99 | The words would add more anguish than the wounds. | The words would adde more anguish then the wounds. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.106 | I come to tell you things sith then befallen. | I come to tell you things sith then befalne. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.111 | I, then in London, keeper of the King, | I then in London, keeper of the King, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.125 | Or more than common fear of Clifford's rigour, | Or more then common feare of Cliffords Rigour, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.200 | Then Clifford, were thy heart as hard as steel, | Then Clifford, were thy heart as hard as Steele, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.203 | Then strike up drums; God and Saint George for us! | Then strike vp Drums, God and S. George for vs. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.i.208 | Why then it sorts, brave warriors; let's away. | Why then it sorts, braue Warriors, let's away. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.53 | Than in possession any jot of pleasure. | Then in possession any iot of pleasure. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.77 | Be it with resolution then to fight. | Be it with resolution then to fight. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.104 | Your legs did better service than your hands. | Your legges did better seruice then your hands. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.105 | Then 'twas my turn to fly, and now 'tis thine. | Then 'twas my turne to fly, and now 'tis thine: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.107 | 'Twas not your valour, Clifford, drove me thence. | 'Twas not your valor Clifford droue me thence. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.118 | Defy them then, or else hold close thy lips. | Defie them then, or els hold close thy lips. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.123 | Then, executioner, unsheathe thy sword. | Then Executioner vnsheath thy sword: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.146 | Helen of Greece was fairer far than thou, | Helen of Greece was fayrer farre then thou, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.ii.156 | Even then that sunshine brewed a shower for him | Euen then that Sun-shine brew'd a showre for him, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.iii.23 | Then let the earth be drunken with our blood; | Then let the earth be drunken with our blood: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.9 | Sometime the flood prevails, and then the wind; | Sometime, the Flood preuailes; and than the Winde: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.10 | Now one the better, then another best; | Now, one the better: then, another best; |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.18 | They prosper best of all when I am thence. | They prosper best of all when I am thence. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.22 | To be no better than a homely swain; | To be no better then a homely Swaine, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.30 | When this is known, then to divide the times: | When this is knowne, then to diuide the Times: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.44 | Than doth a rich embroidered canopy | Then doth a rich Imbroider'd Canopie |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.v.124 | Here sits a king more woeful than you are. | Heere sits a King, more wofull then you are. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.4 | More than my body's parting with my soul! | More then my Bodies parting with my Soule: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.7 | Impairing Henry, strengthening misproud York. | Impairing Henry, strength'ning misproud Yorke; |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.17 | They never then had sprung like summer flies; | They neuer then had sprung like Sommer Flyes: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.41 | Clifford groans and then dies | Clifford grones |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.77 | What! Not an oath? Nay, then the world goes hard | What, not an Oath? Nay then the world go's hard |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 II.vi.97 | And then to Brittany I'll cross the sea | And then to Britanny Ile crosse the Sea, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.35 | By this account then Margaret may win him; | By this account then, Margaret may winne him, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.52 | To strengthen and support King Edward's place. | To strengthen and support King Edwards place. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.54 | Art then forsaken, as thou wentest forlorn! | Art then forsaken, as thou went'st forlorne. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.56 | More than I seem, and less than I was born to: | More then I seeme, and lesse then I was born to: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.i.79 | And tell me, then, have you not broke your oaths? | And tell me then, haue you not broke your Oathes? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.3 | His lands then seized on by the conqueror. | His Land then seiz'd on by the Conqueror, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.21 | Ay, widow? Then I'll warrant you all your lands, | I Widow? then Ile warrant you all your Lands, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.28 | Nay then, whip me; he'll rather give her two. | Nay then whip me: hee'le rather giue her two. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.32 | Be pitiful, dread lord, and grant it then. | Be pittifull, dread Lord, and graunt it then. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.40 | Then get your husband's lands, to do them good. | Then get your Husbands Lands, to doe them good. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.49 | Why, then I will do what your grace commands. | Why then I will doe what your Grace commands. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.51 | As red as fire! Nay, then her wax must melt. | As red as fire? nay then, her Wax must melt. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.55 | Why, then, thy husband's lands I freely give thee. | Why then, thy Husbands Lands I freely giue thee. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.65 | Why, then you mean not as I thought you did. | Why then you meane not, as I thought you did. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.71 | Why, then thou shalt not have thy husband's lands. | Why then thou shalt not haue thy Husbands Lands. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.72 | Why, then mine honesty shall be my dower; | Why then mine Honestie shall be my Dower, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.81 | Then, no, my lord. My suit is at an end. | Then No, my Lord: my suit is at an end. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.90 | 'Tis better said than done, my gracious lord. | 'Tis better said then done, my gracious Lord: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.94 | I speak no more than what my soul intends; | I speake no more then what my Soule intends, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.96 | And that is more than I will yield unto. | And that is more then I will yeeld vnto: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.101 | No more than when my daughters call thee mother. | No more, then when my Daughters / Call thee Mother. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.114 | That's a day longer than a wonder lasts. | That's a day longer then a Wonder lasts. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.134 | Why then, I do but dream on sovereignty; | Why then I doe but dreame on Soueraigntie, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.138 | And chides the sea that sunders him from thence, | And chides the Sea, that sunders him from thence, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.146 | Well, say there is no kingdom then for Richard, | Well, say there is no Kingdome then for Richard: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.152 | Than to accomplish twenty golden crowns! | Then to accomplish twentie Golden Crownes. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.163 | And am I then a man to be beloved? | And am I then a man to be belou'd? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.165 | Then, since this earth affords no joy to me | Then since this Earth affoords no Ioy to me, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.167 | As are of better person than myself, | As are of better Person then my selfe: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.186 | I'll drown more sailors than the mermaid shall; | Ile drowne more Saylers then the Mermaid shall, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.187 | I'll slay more gazers than the basilisk; | Ile slay more gazers then the Basiliske, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.ii.189 | Deceive more slily than Ulysses could, | Deceiue more slyly then Vlisses could, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.53 | And then to crave a league of amity; | And then to craue a League of Amitie: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.80 | And thou no more art prince than she is queen. | And thou no more art Prince, then shee is Queene. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.81 | Then Warwick disannuls great John of Gaunt, | Then Warwicke disanulls great Iohn of Gaunt, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.103 | Was done to death? And more than so, my father, | Was done to death? and more then so, my Father, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.119 | Then further, all dissembling set aside, | Then further: all dissembling set aside, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.134 | Then, Warwick, thus: our sister shall be Edward's; | Then Warwicke, thus: / Our Sister shall be Edwards. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.147 | Then 'tis but reason that I be released | Then 'tis but reason, that I be releas'd |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.155 | And better 'twere you troubled him than France. | And better 'twere, you troubled him, then France. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.210 | For matching more for wanton lust than honour, | For matching more for wanton Lust, then Honor, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.211 | Or than for strength and safety of our country. | Or then for strength and safety of our Country. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.222 | Then, England's messenger, return in post | Then Englands Messenger, returne in Poste, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 III.iii.261 | Then none but I shall turn his jest to sorrow. | Then none but I, shall turne his Iest to Sorrow. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.29 | Then this is mine opinion: that King Lewis | Then this is mine opinion: / That King Lewis |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.37 | Would more have strengthened this our commonwealth | Would more haue strength'ned this our Commonwealth |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.38 | 'Gainst foreign storms than any home-bred marriage. | 'Gainst forraine stormes, then any home-bred Marriage. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.42 | 'Tis better using France than trusting France; | 'Tis better vsing France, then trusting France: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.71 | And meaner than myself have had like fortune. | And meaner then my selfe haue had like fortune. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.109 | Than all the rest, discharged me with these words: | Then all the rest, discharg'd me with these words: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.136 | Tell me if you love Warwick more than me. | Tell me, if you loue Warwicke more then me; |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.137 | If it be so, then both depart to him; | If it be so, then both depart to him: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.138 | I rather wish you foes than hollow friends. | I rather wish you foes, then hollow friends. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.i.146 | Why, so. Then am I sure of victory. | Why so: then am I sure of Victorie. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.ii.6 | Then, gentle Clarence, welcome unto Warwick; | Then gentle Clarence, welcome vnto Warwicke, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.ii.21 | And brought from thence the Thracian fatal steeds, | And brought from thence the Thracian fatall Steeds; |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.ii.28 | Why, then, let's on our way in silent sort; | Why then, let's on our way in silent sort, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.7 | Tomorrow then belike shall be the day, | To morrow then belike shall be the day, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.17 | I like it better than a dangerous honour. | I like it better then a dangerous honor. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.34 | Then I degraded you from being king, | Then I degraded you from being King, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.43 | Nay, then I see that Edward needs must down. | Nay then I see, that Edward needs must downe. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iii.49 | Then, for his mind, be Edward England's king. | Then for his minde, be Edward Englands King, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iv.6 | Then is my sovereign slain? | Then is my Soueraigne slaine? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iv.16 | Till then fair hope must hinder life's decay; | Till then, faire hope must hinder liues decay: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.iv.25 | But, madam, where is Warwick then become? | But Madam, / Where is Warwicke then become? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.20.1 | But whither shall we then? | But whether shall we then? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.21 | And ship from thence to Flanders? | And shipt from thence to Flanders. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.26 | Better do so than tarry and be hanged. | Better do so, then tarry and be hang'd. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.v.27 | Come then, away; let's ha' no more ado. | Come then away, lets ha no more adoo. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.8 | I then crave pardon of your majesty. | I then craue pardon of your Maiestie. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.48 | Why then, though loath, yet must I be content; | Why then, though loth, yet must I be content: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.53 | And, Clarence, now then it is more than needful | And Clarence, now then it is more then needfull, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vi.76 | Must help you more than you are hurt by me. | Must helpe you more, then you are hurt by mee. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.7 | What then remains, we being thus arrived | What then remaines, we being thus arriu'd |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.29 | Ay, say you so? The gates shall then be opened. | I, say you so? the Gates shall then be opened. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.48 | Then fare you well, for I will hence again; | Then fare you well, for I will hence againe, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.59 | When we grow stronger, then we'll make our claim; | When wee grow stronger, / Then wee'le make our Clayme: |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.60 | Till then, 'tis wisdom to conceal our meaning. | Till then, 'tis wisdome to conceale our meaning. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.vii.65 | Then be it as you will; for 'tis my right, | Then be it as you will: for 'tis my right, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 IV.viii.47 | Then why should they love Edward more than me? | Then why should they loue Edward more then me? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.11 | Then Clarence is at hand; I hear his drum. | Then Clarence is at hand, I heare his Drumme. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.35 | Why then, 'tis mine, if but by Warwick's gift. | Why then 'tis mine, if but by Warwickes gift. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.52 | Than bear so low a sail to strike to thee. | Then beare so low a sayle, to strike to thee. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.79 | More than the nature of a brother's love! | More then the nature of a Brothers Loue. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.91 | Than Jephthah, when he sacrificed his daughter. | Then Iephah, when he sacrific'd his Daughter. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.i.104 | Than if thou never hadst deserved our hate. | Then if thou neuer hadst deseru'd our hate. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.ii.33 | Why, then I would not fly. Ah, Montague, | Why then I would not flye. Ah Mountague, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.iv.36 | More than with ruthless waves, with sands and rocks. | More then with ruthlesse Waues, with Sands and Rocks. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.iv.37 | Why, courage then! What cannot be avoided | Why courage then, what cannot be auoided, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.iv.81 | You fight in justice; then in God's name, lords, | You fight in Iustice: then in Gods Name, Lords, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.v.58 | What's worse than murderer, that I may name it? | What's worse then Murtherer, that I may name it? |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.v.71 | What! Wilt thou not? Then, Clarence, do it thou. | What? wilt thou not? Then Clarence do it thou. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.28 | Than can my ears that tragic history. | Then can my eares that Tragicke History. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.33 | Why, then thou art an executioner. | Why then thou art an Executioner. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.49 | Thy mother felt more than a mother's pain, | Thy Mother felt more then a Mothers paine, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.50 | And yet brought forth less than a mother's hope, | And yet brought forth lesse then a Mothers hope, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.78 | Then, since the heavens have shaped my body so, | Then since the Heauens haue shap'd my Body so, |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.88 | And then, to purge his fear, I'll be thy death. | And then to purge his feare, Ile be thy death. |
| Henry VI Part 3 | 3H6 V.vi.90 | Clarence, thy turn is next, and then the rest, | Clarence thy turne is next, and then the rest, |
| Henry VIII | H8 prologue.29 | Of thousand friends: then, in a moment, see | Of thousand Friends: Then, in a moment, see |
| Henry VIII | H8 prologue.31 | And if you can be merry then, I'll say | And if you can be merry then, Ile say, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.8 | I was then present, saw them salute on horseback, | I was then present, saw them salute on Horsebacke, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.13.2 | Then you lost | Then you lost |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.19 | All clinquant, all in gold, like heathen gods, | All Clinquant all in Gold, like Heathen Gods |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.27 | Was cried incomparable; and th' ensuing night | Was cry'de incompareable; and th'ensuing night |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.118 | Well, we shall then know more, and Buckingham | Well, we shall then know more, & Buckingham |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.147 | More stronger to direct you than yourself, | More stronger to direct you then your selfe; |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.i.165 | To this last costly treaty, th' interview | To this last costly Treaty: Th'enteruiew, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.44 | You know no more than others? But you frame | You know no more then others? But you frame |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.69 | I have no further gone in this than by | I haue no further gone in this, then by |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.81 | Than vainly longing. What we oft do best, | Then vainly longing. What we oft doe best, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.ii.118 | Than ever they were fair. This man so complete, | Then euer they were faire. This man so compleat, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iii.28 | Abusing better men than they can be | Abusing better men then they can be |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iii.60 | Sparing would show a worse sin than ill doctrine. | Sparing would shew a worse sinne, then ill Doctrine, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.1.2 | a longer table for the guests. Then enter Anne Bullen | a longer Table for the Guests. Then Enter Anne Bullen, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.44 | In their fair cheeks, my lord; then we shall have 'em | In their faire cheekes my Lord, then wee shall haue 'em, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.79 | More worthy this place than myself, to whom, | More worthy this place then my selfe, to whom |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.84.2 | Let me see then. | Let me see then, |
| Henry VIII | H8 I.iv.107 | To lead 'em once again; and then let's dream | To lead 'em once againe, and then let's dreame |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.42 | Then deputy of Ireland, who removed, | Then Deputy of Ireland, who remou'd |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.57 | Hear what I say, and then go home and lose me. | Heare what I say, and then goe home and lose me. |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.68 | For then my guiltless blood must cry against 'em. | For then, my guiltlesse blood must cry against 'em. |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.71 | More than I dare make faults. You few that loved me, | More then I dare make faults. / You few that lou'd me, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.91 | Longer than I have time to tell his years; | Longer then I haue time to tell his yeares; |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.96 | Then give my charge up to Sir Nicholas Vaux, | Then giue my Charge vp to Sir Nicholas Vaux, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.104 | Yet I am richer than my base accusers | Yet I am richer then my base Accusers, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.120 | A little happier than my wretched father: | A little happier then my wretched Father: |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.142.1 | Greater than this. | Greater then this. |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.i.155 | Fresher than e'er it was, and held for certain | Fresher then e're it was; and held for certaine |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.ii.123 | Believe me, there's an ill opinion spread then, | Beleeue me, there's an ill opinion spread then, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.8 | To leave a thousandfold more bitter than | To leaue, a thousand fold more bitter, then |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.21 | Than to be perked up in a glistering grief | Then to be perk'd vp in a glistring griefe, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.40 | Then you are weakly made. Pluck off a little; | Then you are weakly made; plucke off a little, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.42 | For more than blushing comes to. If your back | For more then blushing comes to: If your backe |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.43 | Cannot vouchsafe this burden, 'tis too weak | Cannot vouchsafe this burthen, tis too weake |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.63 | Than Marchioness of Pembroke; to which title | Then Marchionesse of Pembrooke; to which Title, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.67 | More than my all is nothing; nor my prayers | More then my All, is Nothing: Nor my Prayers |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.69 | More worth than empty vanities; yet prayers and wishes | More worth, then empty vanities: yet Prayers & Wishes |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.98 | Is longer than his foreskirt. By this time | Is longer then his fore-skirt; by this time |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iii.100.1 | Are you not stronger than you were? | Are you not stronger then you were? |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.1.7 | purse, with the great seal, and a cardinal's hat; then | Purse, with the great Seale, and a Cardinals Hat: Then |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.1.8 | two Priests bearing each a silver cross; then Griffith, | two Priests, bearing each a Siluer Crosse: Then |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.1.10 | Sergeant-at-Arms bearing a silver mace; then two | Sergeant at Armes, bearing a Siluer Mace: Then two |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.5.1 | You may then spare that time. | You may then spare that time. |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.13.3 | his feet; then speaks | his Feete. Then speakes. |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.34 | He was from thence discharged? Sir, call to mind | He was from thence discharg'd? Sir, call to minde, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.116 | You tender more your person's honour than | You tender more your persons Honor, then |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.169 | Then mark th' inducement. Thus it came – give heed to't: | Then marke th'inducement. Thus it came; giue heede too't: |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.172 | By th' Bishop of Bayonne, then French ambassador, | By th'Bishop of Bayon, then French Embassador, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.190 | Do no more offices of life to't than | Doe no more Offices of life too't; then |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.196 | Be gladded in't by me. Then follows that | Be gladded in't by me. Then followes, that |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.204 | I then did feel full sick, and yet not well, | I then did feele full sicke, and yet not well, |
| Henry VIII | H8 II.iv.217.2 | I then moved you, | I then mou'd you, |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.i.11 | Hung their heads, and then lay by. | Hung their heads, & then lay by. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.i.111 | The burden of my sorrows fall upon ye. | The burthen of my sorrowes, fall vpon ye. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.88 | There's more in't than fair visage. Bullen! | There's more in't then faire Visage. Bullen? |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.97 | Then out it goes. What though I know her virtuous | Then out it goes. What though I know her vertuous |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.115 | Then lays his finger on his temple; straight | Then layes his finger on his Temple: straight |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.116 | Springs out into fast gait; then stops again, | Springs out into fast gate, then stops againe, |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.167 | Showered on me daily, have been more than could | Showr'd on me daily, haue bene more then could |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.186 | On you than any, so your hand and heart, | On you, then any: So your Hand, and Heart, |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.190.1 | To me, your friend, than any. | To me your Friend, then any. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.192 | More than mine own; that am, have, and will be – | More then mine owne: that am, haue, and will be |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.202 | And after, this; and then to breakfast with | And after this, and then to Breakfast with |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.208 | Then makes him nothing. I must read this paper: | Then makes him nothing. I must reade this paper: |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.222 | I writ to's holiness. Nay then, farewell! | I writ too's Holinesse. Nay then, farewell: |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.236 | Till I find more than will or words to do it – | Till I finde more then will, or words to do it, |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.251.2 | It must be himself then. | It must be himselfe then. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.254.1 | Have burnt that tongue than said so. | Haue burnt that Tongue, then saide so. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.274 | Dare mate a sounder man than Surrey can be, | Dare mate a sounder man then Surrie can be, |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.295 | Worse than the sacring bell, when the brown wench | Worse then the Sacring Bell, when the browne Wench |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.309 | I had rather want those than my head. Have at you! | I had rather want those, then my head; / Haue at you. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.313 | Then, that in all you writ to Rome, or else | Then, That in all you writ to Rome, or else |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.316.2 | Then, that without the knowledge | Then, that without the knowledge |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.326 | Then, that you have sent innumerable substance – | Then, That you haue sent inumerable substance, |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.358 | And then he falls, as I do. I have ventured, | And then he fals as I do. I haue ventur'd |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.370 | More pangs and fears than wars or women have; | More pangs, and feares then warres, or women haue; |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.390 | Than my weak-hearted enemies dare offer. | Then my Weake-hearted Enemies, dare offer. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.422 | Must I then leave you? Must I needs forgo | Must I then leaue you? Must I needes forgo |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.441 | By that sin fell the angels. How can man then, | By that sinne fell the Angels: how can man then |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.444 | Corruption wins not more than honesty. | Corruption wins not more then Honesty. |
| Henry VIII | H8 III.ii.448 | Thy God's, and truth's. Then if thou fall'st, O Cromwell, | Thy Gods, and Truths. Then if thou fall'st (O Cromwell) |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.37.4 | 2. Then two Judges | 2 Then, two Iudges. |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.37.8 | 5. Mayor of London, bearing the mace. Then Garter, | 5 Maior of London, bearing the Mace. Then Garter, |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.37.27 | The procession passes over the stage in order and state, and then a great flourish of trumpets | Exeunt, first passing ouer the Stage in Order and State,and then, A great Flourish of Trumpets. |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.56.1 | The end of the procession leaves; and then a great | |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.i.85 | Then rose again, and bowed her to the people; | Then rose againe, and bow'd her to the people: |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.3 | Willing to leave their burden. Reach a chair. | Willing to leaue their burthen: Reach a Chaire, |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.41 | His promises were as he then was, mighty, | His Promises, were as he then was, Mighty: |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.65 | For then, and not till then, he felt himself, | For then, and not till then, he felt himselfe, |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.68 | Than man could give him, he died fearing God. | Then man could giue him; he dy'de, fearing God. |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.83.6 | congie unto her, then dance; and, at certain changes, | Conge vnto her, then Dance: and at certaine Changes, |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.83.8 | which the other four make reverent curtsies. Then the | which the other foure make reuerend Curtsies. Then the |
| Henry VIII | H8 IV.ii.171 | Then lay me forth; although unqueened, yet like | Then lay me forth (although vnqueen'd) yet like |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.i.15 | In them a wilder nature than the business | In them a wilder Nature, then the businesse |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.i.18 | Much weightier than this work. The Queen's in labour, | Much waightier then this worke. The Queens in Labor |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.i.70 | God safely quit her of her burden, and | God safely quit her of her Burthen, and |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.i.113.1 | Than I myself, poor man. | Then I my selfe, poore man. |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.i.136 | I mean in perjured witness, than your Master, | I meane in periur'd Witnesse, then your Master, |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.i.143 | They shall no more prevail than we give way to. | They shall no more preuaile, then we giue way too: |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.15 | Toward the King first, then his laws, in filling | Toward the King first, then his Lawes, in filling |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.27 | Farewell all physic – and what follows then? | Farewell all Physicke: and what followes then? |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.41 | Defacers of a public peace than I do. | Defacers of a publique peace then I doe: |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.57 | More than, I fear, you are provided for. | More then (I feare) you are prouided for. |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.63 | Become a churchman better than ambition. | Become a Churchman, better then Ambition: |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.83 | Men's prayers then would seek you, not their fears. | Mens prayers then would seeke you, not their feares. |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.87 | Then thus for you, my lord: it stands agreed, | Then thus for you my Lord, it stands agreed |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.118 | The chief aim of his honour, and, to strengthen | The cheefe ayme of his Honour, and to strengthen |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.133 | Than but once think this place becomes thee not. | Then but once thinke his place becomes thee not. |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.145 | More out of malice than integrity, | More out of Malice then Integrity, |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.iii.152 | And fair purgation to the world than malice, | And faire purgation to the world then malice, |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.v.1.1 | Enter trumpets, sounding; then two Aldermen, Lord | Enter Trumpets sounding: Then two Aldermen, L. |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.v.1.5 | then four noblemen bearing a canopy, under which the | Then foure Noblemen bearing a Canopy, vnder which the |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.v.1.8 | then follows the Marchioness Dorset, the other godmother, | Then followes the Marchionesse Dorset, the other Godmother, |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.v.25 | Than this pure soul shall be. All princely graces | Then this pure Soule shall be. All Princely Graces |
| Henry VIII | H8 V.v.49 | Shall then be his, and like a vine grow to him. | Shall then be his, and like a Vine grow to him; |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.i.35 | You blocks, you stones, you worse than senseless things! | You Blockes, you stones, you worse then senslesse things: |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.16 | I hear a tongue shriller than all the music | I heare a Tongue shriller then all the Musicke |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.46 | Than that poor Brutus, with himself at war, | Then that poore Brutus with himselfe at warre, |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.48 | Then, Brutus, I have much mistook your passion, | Then Brutus, I haue much mistook your passion, |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.78 | To all the rout, then hold me dangerous. | To all the Rout, then hold me dangerous. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.81 | Then must I think you would not have it so. | Then must I thinke you would not haue it so. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.89 | The name of honour more than I fear death. | The name of Honor, more then I feare death. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.142 | Why should that name be sounded more than yours? | Why should that name be sounded more then yours. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.152 | But it was famed with more than with one man? | But it was fam'd with more then with one man? |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.170 | Till then, my noble friend, chew upon this: | Till then, my Noble Friend, chew vpon this: |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.172 | Than to repute himself a son of Rome | Then to repute himselfe a Sonne of Rome |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.208 | Whiles they behold a greater than themselves, | Whiles they behold a greater then themselues, |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.211 | Than what I fear; for always I am Caesar. | Then what I feare: for alwayes I am Casar. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.218 | I should not then ask Casca what had chanced. | I should not then aske Caska what had chanc'd. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.221 | and then the people fell a-shouting. | and then the people fell a shouting. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.228 | time gentler than other; and at every putting-by mine | time gentler then other; and at euery putting by, mine |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.238 | had it. Then he offered it to him again; then he put it by | had it. Then hee offered it to him againe: then hee put it by |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.240 | fingers off it. And then he offered it the third time; he | fingers off it. And then he offered it the third time; hee |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.ii.304 | I will do so: till then, think of the world. | I will doe so: till then, thinke of the World. |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.39 | Good night then, Casca: this disturbed sky | Good-night then, Caska: This disturbed Skie |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.76 | A man no mightier than thyself, or me, | A man no mightier then thy selfe, or me, |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.89 | I know where I will wear this dagger then: | I know where I will weare this Dagger then; |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.103 | And why should Caesar be a tyrant then? | And why should Casar be a Tyrant then? |
| Julius Caesar | JC I.iii.113 | Before a willing bondman; then I know | Before a willing Bond-man: then I know |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.16 | And then, I grant, we put a sting in him | And then I graunt we put a Sting in him, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.21 | More than his reason. But 'tis a common proof, | More then his Reason. But 'tis a common proofe, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.25 | He then unto the ladder turns his back, | He then vnto the Ladder turnes his Backe, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.28 | Then, lest he may, prevent. And, since the quarrel | Then least he may, preuent. And since the Quarrell |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.67 | Are then in council; and the state of man, | Are then in councell; and the state of a man, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.68 | Like to a little kingdom, suffers then | Like to a little Kingdome, suffers then |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.79 | When evils are most free? O then, by day | When euills are most free? O then, by day |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.122 | The melting spirits of women, then, countrymen, | The melting Spirits of women. Then Countrymen, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.125 | Than secret Romans that have spoke the word, | Then secret Romans, that haue spoke the word, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.127 | Than honesty to honesty engaged | Then Honesty to Honesty ingag'd, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.152.2 | Then leave him out. | Then leaue him out. |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.163 | To cut the head off and then hack the limbs, | To cut the Head off, and then hacke the Limbes: |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.169 | O, that we then could come by Caesar's spirit, | O that we then could come by Casars Spirit, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.182 | For he can do no more than Caesar's arm | For he can do no more then Casars Arme, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.208 | He says he does, being then most flattered. | He sayes, he does; being then most flattered. |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.214 | Be that the uttermost, and fail not then. | Be that the vttermost, and faile not then. |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.243 | I urged you further; then you scratched your head, | I vrg'd you further, then you scratch'd your head, |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.248 | Fearing to strengthen that impatience | Fearing to strengthen that impatience |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.291 | If this were true, then should I know this secret. | If this were true, then should I know this secret. |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.296 | Think you I am no stronger than my sex, | Thinke you, I am no stronger then my Sex |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.i.334.2 | Follow me then. | Follow me then. |
| Julius Caesar | JC II.ii.45 | That Caesar is more dangerous than he. | That Casar is more dangerous then he. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.49 | Is there no voice more worthy than my own, | Is there no voyce more worthy then my owne, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.77 | Et tu, Brute? – Then fall Caesar! | Et Tu Brute? ---Then fall Casar. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.103 | Grant that, and then is death a benefit: | Grant that, and then is Death a Benefit: |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.108 | Then walk we forth, even to the market-place, | Then walke we forth, euen to the Market place, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.111 | Stoop then, and wash. How many ages hence | Stoop then, and wash. How many Ages hence |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.116.1 | No worthier than the dust! | No worthier then the dust? |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.181 | And then we will deliver you the cause | And then, we will deliuer you the cause, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.195 | If then thy spirit look upon us now, | If then thy Spirit looke vpon vs now, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.196 | Shall it not grieve thee dearer than thy death, | Shall it not greeue thee deerer then thy death, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.202 | It would become me better than to close | It would become me better, then to close |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.213 | Then, in a friend, it is cold modesty. | Then, in a Friend, it is cold Modestie. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.242 | It shall advantage more than do us wrong. | It shall aduantage more, then do vs wrong. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.i.253 | Prepare the body, then, and follow us. | Prepare the body then, and follow vs. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.2 | Then follow me, and give me audience, friends. | Then follow me, and giue me Audience friends. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.19 | that Brutus' love to Caesar was no less than his. If then | that Brutus loue to Casar, was no lesse then his. If then, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.23 | and die all slaves, than that Caesar were dead, to live | and dye all Slaues; then that Casar were dead, to liue |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.36 | Then none have I offended. I have done no more | Then none haue I offended. I haue done no more |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.37 | to Caesar than you shall do to Brutus. The question of | to Casar, then you shall do to Brutus. The Question of |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.104 | What cause withholds you then to mourn for him? | What cause with-holds you then, to mourne for him? |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.117 | There's not a nobler man in Rome than Antony. | There's not a Nobler man in Rome then Antony. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.128 | Than I will wrong such honourable men. | Then I will wrong such Honourable men. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.158 | You will compel me then to read the will? | You will compell me then to read the Will: |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.159 | Then make a ring about the corpse of Caesar, | Then make a Ring about the Corpes of Casar, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.186 | Ingratitude, more strong than traitors' arms, | Ingratitude, more strong then Traitors armes, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.187 | Quite vanquished him: then burst his mighty heart; | Quite vanquish'd him: then burst his Mighty heart, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.192 | Then I, and you, and all of us fell down, | Then I, and you, and all of vs fell downe, |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.233 | Away then! Come, seek the conspirators. | Away then, come, seeke the Conspirators. |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.ii.238 | Alas, you know not! I must tell you then: | Alas you know not, I must tell you then: |
| Julius Caesar | JC III.iii.14 | do I dwell? Am I a married man or a bachelor? Then to | do I dwell? Am I a married man, or a Batchellour? Then to |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.i.1 | These many then shall die; their names are pricked. | These many then shall die, their names are prickt |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.i.18 | Octavius, I have seen more days than you; | Octauius, I haue seene more dayes then you, |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.i.25 | Then take we down his load, and turn him off, | Then take we downe his Load, and turne him off |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.ii.46 | Then in my tent, Cassius, enlarge your griefs, | Then in my Tent Cassius enlarge your Greefes, |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.28.1 | Than such a Roman. | Then such a Roman. |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.31 | Older in practice, abler than yourself | Older in practice, Abler then your selfe |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.73 | And drop my blood for drachmas, than to wring | And drop my blood for Drachmaes, then to wring |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.86 | But Brutus makes mine greater than they are. | But Brutus makes mine greater then they are. |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.101 | Dearer than Pluto's mine, richer than gold: | Deerer then Pluto's Mine, Richer then Gold: |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.106.1 | Than ever thou lovedst Cassius. | Then euer thou loued'st Cassius. |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.130 | For I have seen more years, I'm sure, than ye. | For I haue seene more yeeres I'me sure then yee. |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.186 | Then like a Roman bear the truth I tell; | Then like a Roman, beare the truth I tell, |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.222.2 | Then, with your will, go on; | Then with your will go on: wee'l along |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.282 | Well; then I shall see thee again? | Well: then I shall see thee againe? |
| Julius Caesar | JC IV.iii.284 | Why, I will see thee at Philippi then. | Why I will see thee at Philippi then: |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.29 | Good words are better than bad strokes, Octavius. | Good words are better then bad strokes Octauius. |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.97 | If we do lose this battle, then is this | If we do lose this Battaile, then is this |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.99 | What are you then determined to do? | What are you then determined to do? |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.107.2 | Then, if we lose this battle, | Then, if we loose this Battaile, |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.118 | If not, why then this parting was well made. | If not, why then this parting was well made. |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.122 | Why then, lead on. O, that a man might know | Why then leade on. O that a man might know |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.i.125 | And then the end is known. Come, ho! Away! | And then the end is knowne. Come ho, away. |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.iii.38 | And then I swore thee, saving of thy life, | And then I swore thee, sauing of thy life, |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.iii.102 | To this dead man than you shall see me pay. | To this dead man, then you shall see me pay. |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.iv.29 | Such men my friends than enemies. Go on, | Such men my Friends, then Enemies. Go on, |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.v.7.1 | Peace then. No words. | Peace then, no words. |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.v.25 | Than tarry till they push us. Good Volumnius, | Then tarry till they push vs. Good Volumnius, |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.v.37 | More than Octavius and Mark Antony | More then Octauius, and Marke Antony, |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.v.47 | Hold then my sword, and turn away thy face, | Hold then my Sword, and turne away thy face, |
| Julius Caesar | JC V.v.66 | Octavius, then take him to follow thee, | Octauius, then take him to follow thee, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.i.38 | What then should subjects but embrace their king? | What then should subiects but imbrace their King, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.i.40 | Than striving to rebate a tyrant's pride | Then stryuing to rebate a tyrants pride, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.i.87 | Then, Edward, here, in spite of all thy lords, | Then Edward here in spight of all thy Lords, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.i.104 | Than when reproach with violence is borne. | Then when reproch with violence is borne, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.i.168 | Then cheerfully forward, each a several way; | Then cheerefully forward ech a seuerall way, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.45 | Why then, my liege, let me enjoy her jewels. | Why then my liege let me enioy her iewels, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.98 | Hath she been fairer, Warwick, than she is? | Hath she been fairer Warwike then she is? |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.107 | In duty lower than the ground I kneel, | In duetie lower then the ground I kneele, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.123 | Then, dear my liege, now niggard not thy state. | Then deare my liege, now niggard not thy state, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.128 | No farther off than her conspiring eye, | No farther off, then her conspyring eye, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.134 | More than the sun steals mine own light from me. | More then the Sunne steales myne owne light from mee: |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.140 | That more persuades than winning oratory? | That more perswads then winning Oratorie. |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.144 | Than thou wilt grace our inner house withal. | Then thou wilt grace our inner house withall, |
| King Edward III | E3 I.ii.160 | More gracious than my terms can, let thee be. | More gratious then my tearmes can let thee be, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.6 | Lo, when she blushed, even then did he look pale, | Loe when shee blusht, euen then did he looke pale, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.12 | Than brick to coral, or live things to dead. | Then Bricke to Corrall, or liue things to dead, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.13 | Why did he then thus counterfeit her looks? | Why did he then thus counterfeit her lookes, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.22 | Then, Scottish wars, farewell! I fear 'twill prove | Then Scottish warres farewell, I feare twill prooue |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.26 | Her voice more silver every word than other, | Her voice more siluer euery word then other, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.29 | ‘ Even thus,’ quoth she, ‘ he spake,’ and then spoke broad, | Euen thus quoth she, he spake, and then spoke broad, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.31 | But somewhat better than the Scot could speak. | But somewhat better then the Scot could speake, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.32 | ‘ And thus ’ quoth she, and answered then herself, | And thus quoth she, and answered then herselfe, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.61 | Then in the summer arbour sit by me; | Then in the sommer arber sit by me, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.74 | Then, if thou be a poet, move thou so, | Then if thou be a Poet moue thou so, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.84 | ‘ Better than beautiful ’ thou must begin. | Better then bewtifull thou must begin, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.85 | Devise for fair a fairer word than fair, | Deuise for faire a fairer word then faire, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.103 | Then mayst thou judge what her condition is | Then maist thou iudge what her condition is, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.115 | Her hair, far softer than the silkworm's twist, | Her hair far softor then the silke wormes twist, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.120 | And thence the hot reflection doth rebound | And thence the hot reflection doth rebounde, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.135 | Hers more than most, mine most and more than more; | Hers more then most, myne most, and more then more, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.136 | Hers more to praise than tell the sea by drops, | Hers more to praise then tell the sea by drops, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.137 | Nay, more than drop the massy earth by sands, | Nay more then drop the massie earth by sands, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.139 | Then wherefore talk'st thou of a period | Then wherefore talkest thou of a period, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.142 | ‘ More fair and chaste than is the queen of shades ’ | More faire and chast then is the queen of shades: |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.154 | For I had rather have her chased than chaste. | For I had rather haue her chased then chast, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.157 | Say she hath thrice more splendour than the sun, | Say shee hath thrice more splendour then the sun, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.168 | ‘ More fair and chaste than is the queen of shades, | More faire and chast then is the louer of shades, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.170.1 | In constancy than who? | In constancie then who, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.170.2 | ‘ than Judith was.’ | Then Iudith was, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.175 | I thank thee, then. Thou hast done little ill, | I thancke thee then thou hast don litle ill, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.204 | How near then shall I be to remedy? | How neere then shall I be to remedie. |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.207 | If thou speak'st true, then have I my redress: | Yf thou speakst true then haue I my redresse, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.212 | Then take thyself a little way aside, | Then take thy selfe a litel waie a side, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.246 | I wish no more of thee than thou mayst give, | I wish no more of thee then thou maist giue, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.262 | You break a greater honour than yourself. | You breake a greater honor then your selfe, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.264 | Than to be married: your progenitor, | Then to be maried, your progenitour |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.354 | Were to profane the idol than confound it. | Were to prophaine the Idoll then confound it, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.377 | Then ‘ wife of Salisbury ’ shall I so begin? | Then wife of Salisbury shall I so begin: |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.387 | Hath power to take thine honour; then consent | Hath power to take thy honor, then consent, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.388 | To pawn thine honour rather than thy life. | To pawne thine honor rather then thy life; |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.419 | No marvel though the branch be then infected, | No maruell though the braunches be then infected, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.423 | Why then, give sin a passport to offend | Why then giue sinne a pasport to offend, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.434 | Than the polluted closet of a king; | Then the polluted closet of a king, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.438 | Presents a greater substance than it is; | Presents agreater substaunce then it is: |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.452 | Lilies that fester smell far worse than weeds; | Lillies that fester, smel far worse then weeds, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.i.456 | Which then convert to a most heavy curse | Which then conuert to a most heauie curse, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.12 | Then via for the spacious bounds of France! | Then via for the spatious bounds of Fraunce; |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.20 | Undoubtedly then something is amiss. | Vndoubtedly then some thing is a misse. |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.32 | Then let those foot trudge hence upon those horse, | Then let those foote trudge hence vpon those horse, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.43 | What says the more than Cleopatra's match | Ki. What saies the more then Cleopatras match, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.68 | For that is she herself, and thence it comes | For that is she her selfe, and thence it comes, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.97 | I go to conquer kings; and shall I not then | I go to conquer kings, andshall I not then |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.113 | Than to embrace in an unlawful bed | Then to embrace in an vnlawfull bed, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.120 | To speak the more than heavenly word of yea | To speake the more then heauenly word of yea, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.126 | Than right for right, and render love for love. | Then right for right, and render loue for loue. |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.127 | Than wrong for wrong, and endless hate for hate. | Then wrong for wrong, and endles hate for hate: |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.137 | Name them, fair Countess, and by heaven I will. | Name then faire Countesse, and by heauen I will. |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.151 | Fairer thou art by far than Hero was, | Fairer thou art by farre, then Hero was, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.176 | When they are gone, then I'll consent to love. – | When they are gone, then Ile consent to loue: |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.179 | Than thy prevention can be in my rescue; | Then thy preuention can be in my rescue, |
| King Edward III | E3 II.ii.193 | May better boast of than ever Roman might | May better boast of then euer Romaine might, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.58 | Then Bayard-like, blind overweening Ned, | Then Bayardlike, blinde ouerweaning Ned, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.80 | I hope, the honey being gathered thence, | I hope the hony being gathered thence, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.87 | No otherwise then were their sails with wind, | No otherwise then were their sailes with winde, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.130 | Affrights not more than kings when they dispose | Affrights not more then kings when they dispose, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.155 | Then 'gan the day to turn to gloomy night, | Then gan the day to turne to gloomy night, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.169 | Then might ye see the reeling vessels split, | Then might ye see the reeling vessels split, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.178 | So did the Black Snake of Boulogne, than which | So did the blacke snake of Bullen, then which |
| King Edward III | E3 III.i.185 | Then rests there nothing but with present speed | Then rests there nothing but with present speede, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.ii.10 | What then? | What then? |
| King Edward III | E3 III.ii.11 | What then, quoth you? Why, is't not time to fly, | What then quoth you? why ist not time to flie, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.ii.18 | And then too late he would redeem his time, | And then too late he would redeeme his time, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.ii.21 | Than when he sees it doth begin to rain | Then when he sees it doth begin to raigne, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.ii.27 | Belike you then despair of ill success, | Be like you then dispaire of ill successe, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.ii.30 | Yet rather fight than, like unnatural sons, | Yet rather fight, then like vnnaturall sonnes, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.7 | Then, Gobin, for the service thou hast done, | Then Gobin for the seruice thou hast done, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.64 | Thy labour rather to be feared than loved, | They labour rather to be feared then loued, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.73 | Then is thy salutation honey-sweet; | Then is thy sallutation hony sweete, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.135 | Judge then, conspirators, by this descent, | Iudge then conspiratours by this descent, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.151 | Then, to protect your country and your king, | Then to protect your Country and your King, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.163 | Then, Frenchmen, scorn that such should be your lords, | Then French men scorne that such should be your Lords |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.210 | No otherwise than did old Jacob's words, | No other wise then did ould Iacobes wordes, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iii.219 | Then thus our steeled battles shall be ranged: | Then this our steelde Battailes shall be rainged, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.1 | Alarum. Enter a many Frenchmen flying. After them Prince Edward running. Then enter King John and the Duke of Lorraine | Alarum. Enter a many French men flying. After them Prince Edward runing. Then enter King Iohn and Duke of Loraine. |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.2 | Our number is far greater than our foe's. | Our nomber is far greater then our foes, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.11 | Than by the enemy a thousandfold. | Then by the ennimie a thousand fold. |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.34 | Then will he win a world of honour too, | Then will he win a world of honor to, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.35 | If he by valour can redeem him thence. | If he by vallour can redeeme him thence, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.37 | Than one, to comfort our declining age. | Then one to comfort our declyning age. |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.53 | Why, then his epitaph is lasting praise. | Why then his Ephitaph, is lasting prayse. |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.63 | But if himself, himself redeem from thence, | But if himselfe, himselfe redeeme from thence, |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.66 | Than if they were but babes or captive slaves. | Then if they were but babes or Captiue slaues. |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.67 | O cruel father! Farewell Edward, then. | O cruell Father, farewell Edward then. |
| King Edward III | E3 III.iv.96 | And then new courage made me fresh again, | And then new courage made me fresh againe, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.i.32 | And then thou shalt be set at liberty. | And then thou shalt be set at libertie, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.16 | Far worse than is the quiet sleep of death. | Farre worse then is the quiet sleepe of death: |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.23 | But how do you imagine then to speed? | But how do you imagine then to speed? |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.54 | Well, then we'll have a pursuivant dispatched | Well then wele haue a Pursiuaunt dispatch, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.67 | They will so? Then, belike, they may command, | They wil so: Then belike they may command, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.ii.85 | And better some do go to wrack, than all. | And better some do go to wrack then all. |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iii.18 | Why, then I know the extremity, my lord: | Why then I know the extremitie my Loid, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iii.54 | And then I will attend your highness' pleasure. | And then I will attend your highnes pleasure. |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iii.70 | Then think on him that doth not now dissemble, | Then thinke on him that doth not now dissemble |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.14 | His party stronger battled than our whole. | His partie stronger battaild then our whole: |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.35 | Then thus it stands: the valley for our flight | Then thus it stands, the valleie for our flight, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.40 | Death's name is much more mighty than his deeds: | Deathes name is much more mightie then his deeds, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.44 | Are but my handful of so many sands, | Then all the world, and call it but a power: |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.49 | Which briefly is no more indeed than one. | Which briefelie is no more indeed then one, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.64 | And we have one. Then apprehend no odds, | And we haue one, then apprehend no ods, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.75 | Than e'er was buried in our Breton earth. | Then ere was buried in our Bryttish earth, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.116 | Then render back this commonplace of prayer | Then render backe this common place of prayer, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.138 | First bud we, then we blow, and after seed, | First bud we, then we blow, and after seed, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.139 | Then presently we fall; and, as a shade | Then presently we fall, and as a shade |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.141 | If then we hunt for death, why do we fear it? | If then we hunt for death, why do we feare it? |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.iv.146 | If we fear not, then no resolved proffer | If wee feare not, then no resolued proffer, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.v.93 | Then, arms, adieu, and let them fight that list. | Then armes adieu, and let them fight that list, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.v.103 | Dwell'st thou on precedents? Then be it so! | Dwelst thou on presidents, then be it so, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.v.107 | Then, Salisbury, say whither thou art bound. | Then Salisburie, say whether thou art bound. |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.v.109 | To Calais, Salisbury? Then to Calais pack, | To Callice Salisburie, then to Callice packe, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.v.119 | And thence behold the wretched Prince of Wales, | and thence behold the wretched prince of Wales, |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.vi.4 | Breathe, then, and to it again. The amazed French | Breath then, and too it againe, the amazed French |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.vi.51 | Then charge again. If heaven be not opposed, | Then charge againe, if heauen be not opposd |
| King Edward III | E3 IV.vii.61 | Within an easy litter. Then we'll march | With in an easie Litter, then wele martch. |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.32 | If it be so, then let our covenant stand: | If it be so, then let our couenant stand, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.59 | Learn then to reverence Edward as your king. | Learne then to reuerence Edw. as your king. |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.67 | I am, my liege, a northern squire indeed, | I am my liege a Northen Esquire indeed, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.69 | What moved thee, then, to be so obstinate | What moude thee then to be so obstinate, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.118 | More full of honour than his angry sire, | More full of honor then his angry syre, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.119 | Procured our quick deliverance from thence. | Procurd our quicke deliuerance from thence, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.123 | And, sooner than he thinks, we'll be with him, | And sooner then he thinkes wele be with him: |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.149 | Then sound the trumpets' clangour in the air; | Then sound the Trumpets clangor in the aire, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.201 | Than we did think for, and 'tis so indeed. | Then we did thinke for, and tis so in deed, |
| King Edward III | E3 V.i.241 | God willing, then for England we'll be shipped; | God willing then for England wele be shipt, |
| King John | KJ I.i.21 | Then take my King's defiance from my mouth, | Then take my Kings defiance from my mouth, |
| King John | KJ I.i.40 | Your strong possession much more than your right, | Your strong possessiõ much more then your right, |
| King John | KJ I.i.58 | You came not of one mother then, it seems. | You came not of one mother then it seemes. |
| King John | KJ I.i.114 | Then, good my liege, let me have what is mine, | Then good my Liedge let me haue what is mine, |
| King John | KJ I.i.125 | In sooth he might. Then, if he were my brother's, | Insooth he might: then if he were my brothers, |
| King John | KJ I.i.130 | Shall then my father's will be of no force | Shal then my fathers Will be of no force, |
| King John | KJ I.i.133 | Than was his will to get me, as I think. | Then was his will to get me, as I think. |
| King John | KJ I.i.179 | For France, for France, for it is more than need. | For France, for France, for it is more then need. |
| King John | KJ I.i.182 | A foot of honour better than I was, | Bast. A foot of Honor better then I was, |
| King John | KJ I.i.192 | Why then I suck my teeth and catechize | Why then I sucke my teeth, and catechize |
| King John | KJ I.i.196 | And then comes answer like an Absey book: | And then comes answer like an Absey booke: |
| King John | KJ I.i.249 | Then, good my mother, let me know my father; | Then good my mother, let me know my father, |
| King John | KJ II.i.30 | Salute thee for her king. Till then, fair boy, | Salute thee for her King, till then faire boy |
| King John | KJ II.i.37 | Well then, to work! Our cannon shall be bent | Well, then to worke our Cannon shall be bent |
| King John | KJ II.i.48 | And then we shall repent each drop of blood | And then we shall repent each drop of bloud, |
| King John | KJ II.i.54 | Then turn your forces from this paltry siege | Then turne your forces from this paltry siege, |
| King John | KJ II.i.73 | Than now the English bottoms have waft o'er | Then now the English bottomes haue waft o're, |
| King John | KJ II.i.83 | Let them be welcome then. We are prepared! | Let them be welcome then, we are prepar'd. |
| King John | KJ II.i.107 | How comes it then that thou art called a king, | How comes it then that thou art call'd a King, |
| King John | KJ II.i.127 | Than thou and John in manners – being as like | Then thou and Iohn, in manners being as like, |
| King John | KJ II.i.145 | But, ass, I'll take that burden from your back, | But Asse, Ile take that burthen from your backe, |
| King John | KJ II.i.158 | Than e'er the coward hand of France can win. | Then ere the coward hand of France can win; |
| King John | KJ II.i.244 | Than the constraint of hospitable zeal | Then the constraint of hospitable zeale, |
| King John | KJ II.i.246 | Religiously provokes. Be pleased then | Religiously prouokes. Be pleased then |
| King John | KJ II.i.249 | And then our arms, like to a muzzled bear, | And then our Armes, like to a muzled Beare, |
| King John | KJ II.i.263 | Then tell us, shall your city call us lord | Then tell vs, Shall your Citie call vs Lord, |
| King John | KJ II.i.269 | Acknowledge then the King, and let me in. | Acknowledge then the King, and let me in. |
| King John | KJ II.i.283 | Then God forgive the sin of all those souls | Then God forgiue the sinne of all those soules, |
| King John | KJ II.i.297 | Speed then, to take advantage of the field. | Speed then to take aduantage of the field. |
| King John | KJ II.i.342 | In this hot trial, more than we of France; | In this hot triall more then we of France, |
| King John | KJ II.i.359 | Then let confusion of one part confirm | Then let confusion of one part confirm |
| King John | KJ II.i.360 | The other's peace. Till then, blows, blood, and death! | The others peace: till then, blowes, blood, and death. |
| King John | KJ II.i.368 | A greater power then we denies all this. | A greater powre then We denies all this, |
| King John | KJ II.i.391 | Then, in a moment, Fortune shall cull forth | Then in a moment Fortune shall cull forth |
| King John | KJ II.i.400 | Then after fight who shall be king of it? | Then after fight who shall be king of it? |
| King John | KJ II.i.406 | Why, then defy each other, and pell-mell | Why then defie each other, and pell-mell, |
| King John | KJ II.i.427 | Where should he find it fairer than in Blanche? | Where should he finde it fairer, then in Blanch: |
| King John | KJ II.i.429 | Where should he find it purer than in Blanche? | Where should he finde it purer then in Blanch? |
| King John | KJ II.i.431 | Whose veins bound richer blood than Lady Blanche? | Whose veines bound richer blood then Lady Blanch? |
| King John | KJ II.i.446 | This union shall do more than battery can | This Vnion shall do more then batterie can |
| King John | KJ II.i.448 | With swifter spleen than powder can enforce, | With swifter spleene then powder can enforce |
| King John | KJ II.i.465 | But buffets better than a fist of France. | But buffets better then a fist of France: |
| King John | KJ II.i.518 | Than this: that nothing do I see in you, | Then this, that nothing do I see in you, |
| King John | KJ II.i.524 | Speak then, Prince Dauphin. Can you love this lady? | Speake then Prince Dolphin, can you loue this Ladie? |
| King John | KJ II.i.527 | Then do I give Volquessen, Touraine, Maine, | Then I doe giue Volquessen, Toraine, Maine, |
| King John | KJ II.i.595 | And being rich, my virtue then shall be | And being rich, my vertue then shall be, |
| King John | KJ III.i.25 | Then speak again – not all thy former tale, | Then speake againe, not all thy former tale, |
| King John | KJ III.i.34 | Lewis marry Blanche! O boy, then where art thou? | Lewes marry Blaunch? O boy, then where art thou? |
| King John | KJ III.i.48 | I would not care, I then would be content, | I would not care, I then would be content, |
| King John | KJ III.i.49 | For then I should not love thee; no, nor thou | For then I should not loue thee: no, nor thou |
| King John | KJ III.i.90 | Pray that their burdens may not fall this day, | Pray that their burthens may not fall this day, |
| King John | KJ III.i.103 | But now in arms you strengthen it with yours. | But now in Armes, you strengthen it with yours. |
| King John | KJ III.i.172 | Then, by the lawful power that I have, | Then by the lawfull power that I haue, |
| King John | KJ III.i.215 | O then, tread down my need, and faith mounts up; | O then tread downe my need, and faith mounts vp, |
| King John | KJ III.i.234 | No longer than we well could wash our hands | No longer then we well could wash our hands, |
| King John | KJ III.i.251 | Some gentle order, and then we shall be blessed | Some gentle order, and then we shall be blest |
| King John | KJ III.i.261 | Than keep in peace that hand which thou dost hold. | Then keepe in peace that hand which thou dost hold. |
| King John | KJ III.i.273 | The truth is then most done not doing it. | The truth is then most done not doing it: |
| King John | KJ III.i.291 | Than arm thy constant and thy nobler parts | Then arme thy constant and thy nobler parts |
| King John | KJ III.i.294 | If thou vouchsafe them. But if not, then know | If thou vouchsafe them. But if not, then know |
| King John | KJ III.i.314 | Be stronger with thee than the name of wife? | Be stronger with thee, then the name of wife? |
| King John | KJ III.i.325 | Is it as he will? Well then, France shall rue. | Is it as he will? well then, France shall rue. |
| King John | KJ III.i.347 | No more than he that threats. To arms let's hie! | No more then he that threats. To Arms le'ts hie. |
| King John | KJ III.iii.52 | Then, in despite of brooded watchful day, | Then, in despight of brooded watchfull day, |
| King John | KJ III.iv.39 | Then with a passion would I shake the world, | Then with a passion would I shake the world, |
| King John | KJ III.iv.49 | For then 'tis like I should forget myself! | For then 'tis like I should forget my selfe: |
| King John | KJ III.iv.98 | Then, have I reason to be fond of grief? | Then, haue I reason to be fond of griefe? |
| King John | KJ III.iv.100 | I could give better comfort than you do. | I could giue better comfort then you doe. |
| King John | KJ III.iv.139 | That John may stand, then Arthur needs must fall. | That Iohn may stand, then Arthur needs must fall, |
| King John | KJ III.iv.143 | May then make all the claim that Arthur did. | May then make all the claime that Arthur did. |
| King John | KJ III.iv.164 | Even at that news he dies; and then the hearts | Euen at that newes he dies: and then the hearts |
| King John | KJ III.iv.171 | Than I have named! The bastard Faulconbridge | Then I haue nam'd. The Bastard Falconbridge |
| King John | KJ IV.i.31 | I warrant I love you more than you do me. | I warrant I loue you more then you do me. |
| King John | KJ IV.i.56 | Why then you must. Will you put out mine eyes – | Why then you must. Will you put out mine eyes? |
| King John | KJ IV.i.67 | Are you more stubborn-hard than hammered iron? | Are you more stubborne hard, then hammer'd Iron? |
| King John | KJ IV.i.86 | Alas, I then have chid away my friend! | Alas, I then haue chid away my friend, |
| King John | KJ IV.i.94 | Then feeling what small things are boisterous there, | Then feeling what small things are boysterous there, |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.28 | When workmen strive to do better than well, | When Workemen striue to do better then wel, |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.34 | Than did the fault before it was so patched. | Then did the fault before it was so patch'd. |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.42 | And more, more strong, when lesser is my fear, | And more, more strong, then lesser is my feare |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.47 | Then I, as one that am the tongue of these | Then I, as one that am the tongue of these |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.56 | Why then your fears, which, as they say, attend | Why then your feares, which (as they say) attend |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.65 | Than whereupon our weal, on you depending, | Then, whereupon our weale on you depending, |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.80 | And when it breaks, I fear will issue thence | And when it breakes, I feare will issue thence |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.128 | How wildly then walks my estate in France! | How wildely then walkes my Estate in France? |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.136 | Then let the worst unheard fall on your head. | Then let the worst vn-heard, fall on your head. |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.214 | More upon humour than advised respect. | More vpon humor, then aduis'd respect. |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.217 | Is to be made, then shall this hand and seal | Is to be made, then shall this hand and Seale |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.259 | Than to be butcher of an innocent child. | Then to be butcher of an innocent childe. |
| King John | KJ IV.ii.266 | Presented thee more hideous than thou art. | Presented thee more hideous then thou art. |
| King John | KJ IV.iii.17 | Is much more general than these lines import. | Is much more generall, then these lines import. |
| King John | KJ IV.iii.18 | Tomorrow morning let us meet him then. | To morrow morning let vs meete him then. |
| King John | KJ IV.iii.19 | Or rather then set forward; for 'twill be | Or rather then set forward, for 'twill be |
| King John | KJ IV.iii.122 | Thou art more deep damned than Prince Lucifer; | Thou art more deepe damn'd then Prince Lucifer: |
| King John | KJ V.i.14 | Then pause not, for the present time's so sick, | Then pause not: for the present time's so sicke, |
| King John | KJ V.i.78 | Away, then, with good courage! Yet, I know, | Away then with good courage: yet I know |
| King John | KJ V.ii.52 | Than had I seen the vaulty top of heaven | Then had I seene the vaultie top of heauen |
| King John | KJ V.ii.58 | Nor met with fortune other than at feasts, | Nor met with Fortune, other then at feasts, |
| King John | KJ V.ii.77 | And be no further harmful than in show. | And be no further harmefull then in shewe. |
| King John | KJ V.ii.175 | Whom he hath used rather for sport than need – | Whom he hath vs'd rather for sport, then neede) |
| King John | KJ V.iv.28 | Why should I then be false, since it is true | Why should I then be false, since it is true |
| King John | KJ V.vi.18.2 | Brief, then; and what's the news? | Brcefe then: and what's the newes? |
| King John | KJ V.vi.27 | Than if you had at leisure known of this. | Then if you had at leisure knowne of this. |
| King John | KJ V.vii.12 | Than when you left him. Even now he sung. | Then when you left him; euen now he sung. |
| King John | KJ V.vii.57 | And then all this thou seest is but a clod | And then all this thou seest, is but a clod, |
| King John | KJ V.vii.72 | And then my soul shall wait on thee to heaven, | And then my soule shall waite on thee to heauen, |
| King John | KJ V.vii.81 | It seems you know not, then, so much as we. | It seemes you know not then so much as we, |
| King John | KJ V.vii.100.2 | Thither shall it then. | Thither shall it then, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.2 | Albany than Cornwall. | Albany, then Cornwall. |
| King Lear | KL I.i.19 | year elder than this, who yet is no dearer in my account. | yeere elder then this; who, yet is no deerer in my account, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.41 | Unburdened crawl toward death. Our son of Cornwall – | Vnburthen'd crawle toward death. Our son of Cornwal, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.55 | Sir, I love you more than word can wield the matter, | Sir, I loue you more then word can weild ye matter, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.56 | Dearer than eyesight, space, and liberty, | Deerer then eye-sight, space, and libertie, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.58 | No less than life, with grace, health, beauty, honour, | No lesse then life, with grace, health, beauty, honor: |
| King Lear | KL I.i.76.2 | Then poor Cordelia! | Then poore Cordelia, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.78 | More ponderous than my tongue. | More ponderous then my tongue. |
| King Lear | KL I.i.82 | Than that conferred on Gonerill. – Now, our joy, | Then that conferr'd on Gonerill. Now our Ioy, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.86 | A third more opulent than your sisters'? Speak! | A third, more opilent then your Sisters? speake. |
| King Lear | KL I.i.108 | Let it be so! Thy truth then be thy dower! | Let it be so, thy truth then be thy dowre: |
| King Lear | KL I.i.194 | I crave no more than hath your highness offered, | I craue no more then hath your Highnesse offer'd, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.207 | Then leave her, sir, for, by the power that made me, | Then leaue her sir, for by the powre that made me, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.212 | Than on a wretch whom Nature is ashamed | Then on a wretch whom Nature is asham'd |
| King Lear | KL I.i.234 | Hadst not been born than not t' have pleased me better. | Not beene borne, then not t haue pleas'd me better. |
| King Lear | KL I.i.246 | I am sorry then you have so lost a father | I am sorry then you haue so lost a Father, |
| King Lear | KL I.i.295 | but rash. Then must we look from his age to receive not | but rash, then must we looke from his age, to receiue not |
| King Lear | KL I.ii.13 | Than doth within a dull, stale, tired bed | Then doth within a dull stale tyred bed |
| King Lear | KL I.ii.15 | Got 'tween asleep and wake? Well then, | Got 'tweene a sleepe, and wake? Well then, |
| King Lear | KL I.ii.33 | No? What needed then that terrible dispatch | No? what needed then that terrible dispatch |
| King Lear | KL I.ii.78 | villain! worse than brutish! Go, sirrah, seek him; I'll | Villaine; worse then brutish: Go sirrah, seeke him: Ile |
| King Lear | KL I.ii.93 | without any further delay than this very evening. | without any further delay, then this very Euening. |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.13 | I do profess to be no less than I seem: to serve him | I do professe to be no lesse then I seeme; to serue him |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.69 | curiosity than as a very pretence and purpose of | curiositie, then as a very pretence and purpose of |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.117 | Have more than thou showest, | Haue more then thou showest, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.118 | Speak less than thou knowest, | Speake lesse then thou knowest, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.119 | Lend less than thou owest, | Lend lesse then thou owest, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.120 | Ride more than thou goest, | Ride more then thou goest, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.121 | Learn more than thou trowest, | Learne more then thou trowest, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.122 | Set less than thou throwest; | Set lesse then thou throwest; |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.126 | Than two tens to a score. | Then two tens to a score. |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.128 | Then 'tis like the breath of an unfee'd lawyer: you | Then 'tis like the breath of an vnfeed Lawyer, you |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.171 | Then they for sudden joy did weep, | then they / For sodaine ioy did weepe, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.182 | o' thing than a fool. And yet I would not be thee, nuncle. | o'thing then a foole, and yet I would not be thee Nunckle, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.189 | figure. I am better than thou art now; I am a fool; thou | figure, I am better then thou art now, I am a Foole, thou |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.208 | Which else were shame, that then necessity | Which else were shame, that then necessitie |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.242 | Than a graced palace. The shame itself doth speak | Then a grac'd Pallace. The shame it selfe doth speake |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.243 | For instant remedy. Be then desired, | For instant remedy. Be then desir'd |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.258.1 | Than the sea-monster! | Then the Sea-monster. |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.285 | How sharper than a serpent's tooth it is | How sharper then a Serpents tooth it is, |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.311 | You, sir, more knave than fool, after your master! | You Sir, more Knaue then Foole, after your Master. |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.325.2 | Safer than trust too far. | Safer then trust too farre; |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.341 | Than praised for harmful mildness. | Then prai'sd for harmefull mildnesse. |
| King Lear | KL I.iv.344 | Nay then – | Nay then---- |
| King Lear | KL I.v.3 | you know than comes from her demand out of the letter. | you know, then comes from her demand out of the Letter, |
| King Lear | KL I.v.11 | Then I prithee be merry. Thy wit shall not go | Then I prythee be merry, thy wit shall not go |
| King Lear | KL I.v.34 | seven stars are no more than seven is a pretty reason. | seuen Starres are no mo then seuen, is a pretty reason. |
| King Lear | KL II.i.13 | You may do, then, in time. Fare you well, sir. | You may do then in time, / Fare you well Sir. |
| King Lear | KL II.i.35.1 | Do more than this in sport. | Do more then this in sport; |
| King Lear | KL II.i.53 | Bold in the quarrel's right, roused to th' encounter, | Bold in the quarrels right, rouz'd to th'encounter, |
| King Lear | KL II.i.97 | No marvel then though he were ill affected. | No maruaile then, though he were ill affected, |
| King Lear | KL II.ii.7 | Why then, I care not for thee. | Why then I care not for thee. |
| King Lear | KL II.ii.86 | Than I and such a knave. | Then I, and such a knaue. |
| King Lear | KL II.ii.92 | Than stands on any shoulder that I see | Then stands on any shoulder that I see |
| King Lear | KL II.ii.101 | Than twenty silly-ducking observants | Then twenty silly-ducking obseruants, |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.10 | legs, then he wears wooden nether-stocks. | legs, then he weares wodden nether-stocks. |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.22 | They could not, would not do't; 'tis worse than murder | They could not, would not do't: 'tis worse then murther, |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.41 | Having more man than wit about me, drew. | Hauing more man then wit about me, drew; |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.135.1 | Than she to scant her duty. | Then she to scant her dutie. |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.145 | Better than you yourself. Therefore I pray you | Better then you your selfe: therefore I pray you, |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.199 | Dismissing half your train, come then to me. | Dismissing halfe your traine, come then to me, |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.240 | Why not, my lord? If then they chanced to slack ye, | Why not my Lord? / If then they chanc'd to slacke ye, |
| King Lear | KL II.iv.261 | Allow not nature more than nature needs – | Allow not Nature, more then Nature needs: |
| King Lear | KL III.i.45 | Than my out-wall, open this purse and take | Then my out-wall; open this Purse, and take |
| King Lear | KL III.i.52 | Few words, but to effect more than all yet: | Few words, but to effect more then all yet; |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.11 | than this rain-water out o' door. Good nuncle, in; ask thy | then this Rain-water out o' doore. Good Nunkle, in, aske thy |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.18 | You owe me no subscription; then let fall | You owe me no subscription. Then let fall |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.60.1 | More sinned against than sinning. | More sinn'd against, then sinning. |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.64 | More harder than the stones whereof 'tis raised; | (More harder then the stones whereof 'tis rais'd, |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.81 | When priests are more in word than matter, | When Priests are more in word, then matter; |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.85 | Then shall the realm of Albion | Then shal the Realme of Albion, |
| King Lear | KL III.ii.93 | Then comes the time, who lives to see't, | Then comes the time, who liues to see't, |
| King Lear | KL III.iii.8 | between the Dukes; and a worse matter than that. I | betweene the Dukes, and a worsse matter then that: I |
| King Lear | KL III.iii.22 | That which my father loses – no less than all. | That which my Father looses: no lesse then all, |
| King Lear | KL III.iv.27 | Nay, get thee in. I'll pray and then I'll sleep. | Nay get thee in; Ile pray, and then Ile sleepe. |
| King Lear | KL III.iv.98 | Thou wert better in a grave than to answer with thy | Thou wert better in a Graue, then to answere with thy |
| King Lear | KL III.iv.100 | more than this? Consider him well. Thou owest the | more then this? Consider him well. Thou ow'st the |
| King Lear | KL III.iv.174 | Come, good Athenian. | Come, good Athenian. |
| King Lear | KL III.vi.1 | Here is better than the open air. Take it | Heere is better then the open ayre,t ake it |
| King Lear | KL III.vi.75 | Then let them anatomize Regan, see what breeds | Then let them Anatomize Regan: See what breeds |
| King Lear | KL III.vi.104 | But then the mind much sufferance doth o'erskip | |
| King Lear | KL III.vii.74.1 | Than now to bid you hold. | Then now to bid you hold. |
| King Lear | KL III.vii.78 | Nay then, come on, and take the chance of anger. | Nay then come on, and take the chance of anger. |
| King Lear | KL III.vii.90 | O my follies! Then Edgar was abused. | O my Follies! then Edgar was abus'd, |
| King Lear | KL IV.i.2 | Than still contemned and flattered. To be worst, | Then still contemn'd and flatter'd, to be worst: |
| King Lear | KL IV.i.6 | The worst returns to laughter. Welcome, then, | The worst returnes to laughter. Welcome then, |
| King Lear | KL IV.i.26.1 | I am worse than e'er I was. | I am worse then ere I was. |
| King Lear | KL IV.i.34 | Came then into my mind, and yet my mind | Came then into my minde, and yet my minde |
| King Lear | KL IV.i.35 | Was then scarce friends with him. I have heard more since. | Was then scarse Friends with him. / I haue heard more since: |
| King Lear | KL IV.i.41 | Then prithee get thee away. If for my sake | Get thee away: If for my sake |
| King Lear | KL IV.ii.8 | When I informed him, then he called me sot | When I inform'd him, then he call'd me Sot, |
| King Lear | KL IV.ii.11.2 | Then shall you go no further. | Then shall you go no further. |
| King Lear | KL IV.iii.12 | And now and then an ample tear trilled down | |
| King Lear | KL IV.iii.15.2 | O, then it moved her? | |
| King Lear | KL IV.iii.21 | What guests were in her eyes, which parted thence | |
| King Lear | KL IV.iii.31 | And clamour moistened; then away she started | |
| King Lear | KL IV.v.14 | The strength o'th' enemy. | The strength o'th'Enemy. |
| King Lear | KL IV.v.32 | Than for your lady's. You may gather more. | Then for your Ladies: You may gather more: |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.5 | Why then your other senses grow imperfect | Why then your other Senses grow imperfect |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.8 | In better phrase and matter than thou didst. | In better phrase, and matter then thou did'st. |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.16 | Methinks he seems no bigger than his head. | Me thinkes he seemes no bigger then his head. |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.115 | Was kinder to his father than my daughters | was kinder to his Father, / Then my Daughters |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.188 | Then kill, kill, kill, kill, kill, kill! | Then kill, kill, kill, kill, kill, kill. |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.202 | Then there's life in't. Nay, and you get it you shall | Then there's life in't. Come, and you get it, / You shall |
| King Lear | KL IV.vi.265 | return the conqueror. Then am I the prisoner, and his bed | returne the Conqueror, then am I the Prisoner, and his bed, |
| King Lear | KL IV.vii.12.1 | Then be't so, my good lord. | Then be't so my good Lord: |
| King Lear | KL V.i.8 | Tell me but truly – but then speak the truth – | Tell me but truly, but then speake the truth, |
| King Lear | KL V.i.31.2 | Let's then determine | Let's then determine |
| King Lear | KL V.i.62 | Her husband being alive. Now then, we'll use | Her husband being aliue. Now then, wee'l vse |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.69.1 | More than in your addition. | More then in your addition. |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.96.1 | Than I have here proclaimed thee. | Then I haue heere proclaim'd thee. |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.154 | Thou worse than any name, read thine own evil. | Thou worse then any name, reade thine owne euill: |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.165 | I am no less in blood than thou art, Edmund; | I am no lesse in blood then thou art Edmond, |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.184 | Rather than die at once – taught me to shift | Rather then die at once) taught me to shift |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.208 | Shunned my abhorred society; but then finding | |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.215 | Began to crack. Twice then the trumpets sounded, | |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.261.1 | Why, then she lives. | Why then she liues. |
| King Lear | KL V.iii.300 | Have more than merited. All friends shall taste | Haue more then merited. All Friends shall |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.3 | And then grace us in the disgrace of death; | And then grace vs in the disgrace of death: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.5 | The endeavour of this present breath may buy | Th'endeuour of this present breath may buy: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.42 | And then to sleep but three hours in the night, | And then to sleepe but three houres in the night, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.54 | By yea and nay, sir, then I swore in jest. | By yea and nay sir, than I swore in iest. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.59 | Come on then, I will swear to study so, | Come on then, I will sweare to studie so, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.91 | Than those that walk and wot not what they are. | Then those that walke and wot not what they are. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.99.2 | Something then in rhyme. | Something then in rime. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.106 | Than wish a snow in May's new-fangled shows, | Then wish a Snow in Mayes new fangled showes: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.113 | Than for that angel knowledge you can say, | Then for that Angell knowledge you can say, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.235 | park. Then for the place where – where, I mean, I did | Parke. Then for the place Where? where I meane I did |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.i.301 | Affliction may one day smile again, and till then sit | affliction may one day smile againe, and vntill then sit |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.45 | Then I am sure you know how much the gross sum | Then I am sure you know how much the grosse summe |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.47 | It doth amount to one more than two. | It doth amount to one more then two. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.98 | Then if she fear or be to blame, | Then if she feare, or be to blame, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.114 | To be whipped – and yet a better love than | To bee whip'd: and yet a better loue then |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL I.ii.145 | I am more bound to you than your fellows, for | I am more bound to you then your fellowes, for |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.8 | Than Aquitaine, a dowry for a queen. | Then Aquitaine, a Dowrie for a Queene. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.18 | Than you much willing to be counted wise | Then you much wiling to be counted wise, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.87 | Than seek a dispensation for his oath, | Then seeke a dispensation for his oath: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.96 | I will be welcome, then. Conduct me thither. | I wil be welcome then, Conduct me thither. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.114.2 | Berowne and Rosaline converse apart | [Q1] BEROWNE Did not I dance with you in Brabant once? KATHER. Did not I dance with you in Brabant once? BEROWNE I know you did. KATH. How needles was it then to aske the question? BEROWNE You must not be so quicke. KATH. Tis long of you that spur me with such questions. BEROWNE Your wit's too hot, it speedes too fast, twill tire. KATH. Not till it leaue the rider in the mire. BEROWNE What time a day? KATH. The houre that fooles should aske. BEROWNE Now faire befall your maske. KATH. Faire fall the face it couers. BEROWNE And send you manie louers. KATH. Amen, so you be none. BEROWNE Nay then will I be gone. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.138 | If then the King your father will restore | If then the King your father will restore |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.149 | Than Aquitaine, so gelded as it is. | Then Aquitane, so guelded as it is. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.242 | Then was Venus like her mother, for her father is but grim. | Then was Venus like her mother, for her father is but grim. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL II.i.243.3 | What then, do you see? | What then, do you see? |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.63.2 | Thump then, and I flee. | Thump then, and I flee. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.105 | Then called you for the l'envoy. | Then cal'd you for the Lenuoy. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.107 | argument in; then the boy's fat l'envoy, the goose that | argument in: / Then the Boyes fat Lenuoy, the Goose that |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.139 | than French crown. I will never buy and sell out of | then a French-Crowne. I will neuer buy and sell out of |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.146 | Why then, three-farthing worth of silk. | O, Why then three farthings worth of Silke. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.162 | When tongues speak sweetly, then they name her name, | When tongues speak sweetly, then they name her name, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.166 | Guerdon, O sweet guerdon! Better than | Gardon, O sweete gardon, better then |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL III.i.175 | Than whom no mortal so magnificent! | Then whom no mortall so magnificent, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.7 | Then, forester, my friend, where is the bush | Then Forrester my friend, Where is the Bush |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.14 | What, what? First praise me, and again say no? | What, what? First praise me, & then again say no. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.19 | Fair payment for foul words is more than due. | Faire paiment for foule words, is more then due. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.25 | And shooting well is then accounted ill. | And shooting well, is then accounted ill: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.28 | If wounding, then it was to show my skill, | If wounding, then it was to shew my skill, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.29 | That more for praise than purpose meant to kill. | That more for praise, then purpose meant to kill. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.65 | thou art lovely. More fairer than fair, beautiful than | thou art louely: more fairer then faire, beautifull then |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.66 | beauteous, truer than truth itself, have commiseration on | beautious, truer then truth it selfe: haue comiseration on |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.93 | But if thou strive, poor soul, what art thou then? | But if thou striue (poore soule) what art thou then? |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.115.1 | Well then, I am the shooter. | Well then, I am the shooter. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.136 | An if my hand be out, then belike your hand is in. | And if my hand be out, then belike your hand is in. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.i.137 | Then will she get the upshoot by cleaving the pin. | Then will shee get the vpshoot by cleauing the is in. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.ii.29 | Which we of taste and feeling are – for those parts that do fructify in us more than he. | which we taste and feeling, are for those parts that doe fructifie in vs more then he. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.ii.59 | The dogs did yell; put ‘ L ’ to sore, then sorel jumps from thicket; | The Dogges did yell, put ell to Sore, then Sorell iumps from thicket: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.ii.61 | If sore be sore, then ‘ L ’ to sore makes fifty sores o' sorel: | If Sore be sore, then ell to Sore, makes fiftie sores O sorell: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.36 | But do not love thyself; then thou will keep | But doe not loue thy selfe, then thou wilt keepe |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.67 | Then thou, fair sun, which on my earth dost shine, | Then thou faire Sun, which on my earth doest shine, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.69 | If broken, then, it is no fault of mine; | If broken then, it is no fault of mine: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.89 | Ay, as some days; but then no sun must shine. | I as some daies, but then no sunne must shine. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.95 | A fever in your blood? Why, then incision | A Feuer in your bloud, why then incision |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.230 | My eyes are then no eyes, nor I Berowne. | My eyes are then no eyes, nor I Berowne. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.239 | She passes praise; then praise too short doth blot. | She passes prayse, then prayse too short doth blot. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.273 | No devil will fright thee then so much as she. | No Diuell will fright thee then so much as shee. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.278 | O, vile! Then, as she goes, what upward lies | O vile, then as she goes what vpward lyes? |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.282 | Then leave this chat, and, good Berowne, now prove | Then leaue this chat, & good Berown now proue |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.287.2 | 'Tis more than need. | O 'tis more then neede. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.288 | Have at you then, affection's men-at-arms! | Haue at you then affections men at armes, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.293 | And abstinence engenders maladies. | And abstinence ingenders maladies. / And where that you haue vow'd to studie (Lords) / In that each of you haue forsworne his Booke. / Can you still dreame and pore, and thereon looke. / For when would you my Lord, or you, or you, / Haue found the ground of studies excellence, / Without the beauty of a womans face; / From womens eyes this doctrine I deriue, / They are the Ground, the Bookes, the Achadems, / From whence doth spring the true Promethean fire. / Why, vniuersall plodding poysons vp / The nimble spirits in the arteries, / As motion and long during action tyres / The sinnowy vigour of the trauailer. / Now for not looking on a womans face, / You haue in that forsworne the vse of eyes: / And studie too, the causer of your vow. / For where is any Author in the world, / Teaches such beauty as a womans eye: / Learning is but an adiunct to our selfe, / And where we are, our Learning likewise is. / Then when our selues we see in Ladies eyes, / With our selues. / Doe we not likewise see our learning there? |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.314 | Than are the tender horns of cockled snails. | Then are the tender hornes of Cockled Snayles. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.324 | O, then his lines would ravish savage ears | O then his lines would rauish sauage eares, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.331 | Then fools you were these women to forswear, | Then fooles you were these women to forsweare: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.342 | Saint Cupid, then! And, soldiers, to the field! | Saint Cupid then, and Souldiers to the field. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL IV.iii.351 | Then homeward every man attach the hand | Then homeward euery man attach the hand |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.i.17 | finer than the staple of his argument. I abhor such | finer then the staple of his argument. I abhor such |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.i.42 | than a flap-dragon. | then a flapdragon. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.131 | And then the King will court thee for his dear. | And then the King will court thee for his Deare: |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.136 | Come on, then, wear the favours most in sight. | Come on then, weare the fauours most in sight. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.159 | Beauties no richer than rich taffeta. | Beauties no richer then rich Taffata. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.190 | The measure then of one is easily told. | The measure then of one is easlie told. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.209 | Then in our measure vouchsafe but one change. | Then in our measure, vouchsafe but one change. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.211 | Play music then! Nay, you must do it soon. | Play musicke then: nay you must doe it soone. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.220.1 | Why take we hands then? | Why take you hands then? |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.226 | Then cannot we be bought; and so adieu – | Then cannot we be bought: and so adue, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.229.1 | In private then. | In priuate then. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.232 | Nay then, two treys, an if you grow so nice, | Nay then two treyes, an if you grow so nice |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.253 | Then die a calf before your horns do grow. | Then die a Calfe before your horns do grow. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.255 | Bleat softly then. The butcher hears you cry. | Bleat softly then, the Butcher heares you cry. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.258 | Cutting a smaller hair than may be seen; | Cutting a smaller haire then may be seene, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.261 | Fleeter than arrows, bullets, wind, thought, swifter things. | Fleeter then arrows, bullets wind, thoght, swifter things |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.342 | Then wish me better; I will give you leave. | Then wish me better, I wil giue you leaue. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.344 | To lead you to our court. Vouchsafe it then. | To leade you to our Court, vouchsafe it then. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.387 | There, then, that visor: that superfluous case | There, then, that vizard, that superfluous case, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.435.2 | When you then were here, | When you then were heere, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.437 | That more than all the world I did respect her. | That more then all the world I did respect her |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.468 | The ladies did change favours, and then we, | The Ladies did change Fauours; and then we |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.511 | To have one show worse than the King's and his company. | to haue one shew worse then the Kings and his companie. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.677 | Then shall Hector be whipped for Jaquenetta | Then shall Hector be whipt for Iaquenetta |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.682 | Greater than ‘ Great ’! Great, great, great | Greater then great, great, great, great |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.689 | than will sup a flea. | then will sup a Flea. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.777 | But more devout than this in our respects | But more deuout then these are our respects |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.780 | Our letters, madam, showed much more than jest. | Our letters Madam, shew'd much more then iest. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.799 | Then, at the expiration of the year, | Then at the expiration of the yeare, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.808 | If this, or more than this, I would deny, | If this, or more then this, I would denie, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.811 | | Hence euer then, my heart is in thy brest. / Ber. And what to me my Loue? and what to me? / Ros. You must be purged too, your sins are rack'd. / You are attaint with faults and periurie: / Therefore if you my fauor meane to get, / A tweluemonth shall you spend, and neuer rest, / But seeke the wearie beds of people sicke. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.819 | Then, if I have much love, I'll give you some. | Then if I haue much loue, Ile giue you some. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.820 | I'll serve thee true and faithfully till then. | Ile serue thee true and faithfully till then. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.852 | Of him that makes it. Then, if sickly ears, | Of him that makes it: then, if sickly eares, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.854 | Will hear your idle scorns, continue then, | Will heare your idle scornes; continue then, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.867.1 | And then 'twill end. | And then 'twil end. |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.887 | The cuckoo then, on every tree, | The Cuckow then on euerie tree, |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.896 | The cuckoo then, on every tree, | The Cuckow then on euerie tree |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.906 | Then nightly sings the staring owl: | Then nightly sings the staring Owle |
| Love's Labour's Lost | LLL V.ii.915 | Then nightly sings the staring owl: | Then nightly sings the staring Owle, |
| Macbeth | Mac I.iii.59 | Speak then to me who neither beg nor fear | Speake then to me, who neyther begge, nor feare |
| Macbeth | Mac I.iii.74 | No more than to be Cawdor. Say from whence | No more then to be Cawdor. Say from whence |
| Macbeth | Mac I.iii.137 | Are less than horrible imaginings. | Are lesse then horrible Imaginings: |
| Macbeth | Mac I.iii.156 | Till then, enough! – Come, friends. | Till then enough: Come friends. |
| Macbeth | Mac I.iv.22 | ‘ More is thy due than more than all can pay.’ | More is thy due, then more then all can pay. |
| Macbeth | Mac I.v.2 | by the perfectest report they have more in them than mortal | by the perfect'st report, they haue more in them, then mortall |
| Macbeth | Mac I.v.23 | Than wishest should be undone. Hie thee hither | Then wishest should be vndone. High thee hither, |
| Macbeth | Mac I.v.35.1 | Than would make up his message. | Then would make vp his Message. |
| Macbeth | Mac I.v.53 | Greater than both by the all-hail hereafter! | Greater then both, by the all-haile hereafter, |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vi.15 | In every point twice done and then done double | In euery point twice done, and then done double, |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.1.2 | with dishes and service over the stage. Then enter | with Dishes and Seruice ouer the Stage. Then enter |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.1 | If it were done when 'tis done, then 'twere well | If it were done, when 'tis done, then 'twer well, |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.14 | Strong both against the deed; then, as his host, | Strong both against the Deed: Then, as his Host, |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.47.2 | What beast was't then | What Beast was't then |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.49 | When you durst do it, then you were a man; | When you durst do it, then you were a man: |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.50 | And to be more than what you were, you would | And to be more then what you were, you would |
| Macbeth | Mac I.vii.52 | Did then adhere, and yet you would make both. | Did then adhere, and yet you would make both: |
| Macbeth | Mac II.ii.68 | How easy is it then! Your constancy | How easie is it then? your Constancie |
| Macbeth | Mac II.iii.65 | The Lord's anointed temple and stole thence | The Lords anoynted Temple, and stole thence |
| Macbeth | Mac II.iii.70.1 | See, and then speak yourselves. | See, and then speake your selues:, |
| Macbeth | Mac II.iii.127 | In the great hand of God I stand, and thence | In the great Hand of God I stand, and thence, |
| Macbeth | Mac II.iv.22 | Is't known who did this more than bloody deed? | Is't known who did this more then bloody deed? |
| Macbeth | Mac II.iv.29 | Thine own life's means! – Then 'tis most like | Thine owne liues meanes: Then 'tis most like, |
| Macbeth | Mac II.iv.38 | Lest our old robes sit easier than our new. | Least our old Robes sit easier then our new. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.44.1 | While then, God be with you! | While then, God be with you. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.58 | And bade them speak to him. Then prophet-like, | And bad them speake to him. Then Prophet-like, |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.62 | Thence to be wrenched with an unlineal hand, | Thence to be wrencht with an vnlineall Hand, |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.70 | Rather than so, come fate into the list | Rather then so, come Fate into the Lyst, |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.74.2 | Well then now, | Well then, Now |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.122 | Who I myself struck down. And thence it is | Who I my selfe struck downe: and thence it is, |
| Macbeth | Mac III.i.136 | Than is his father's, must embrace the fate | Then is his Fathers, must embrace the fate |
| Macbeth | Mac III.ii.7 | Than by destruction dwell in doubtful joy. | Then by destruction dwell in doubtfull ioy. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.ii.21 | Than on the torture of the mind to lie | Then on the torture of the Minde to lye |
| Macbeth | Mac III.ii.40 | Then be thou jocund. Ere the bat hath flown | Then be thou iocund: ere the Bat hath flowne |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iii.4.2 | Then stand with us; | Then stand with vs: |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iii.9.2 | Then 'tis he. | Then 'tis hee: |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.13.2 | 'Tis Banquo's then. | 'Tis Banquo's then. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.14 | 'Tis better thee without than he within. | 'Tis better thee without, then he within. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.20 | Then comes my fit again. I had else been perfect, | Then comes my Fit againe: I had else beene perfect; |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.35 | From thence the sauce to meat is ceremony; | From thence, the sawce to meate is Ceremony, |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.42.1 | Than pity for mischance. | Then pitty for Mischance. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.82.1 | Than such a murder is. | Then such a murther is. |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.87 | Then I'll sit down. Give me some wine; fill full! | Then Ile sit downe: Giue me some Wine, fill full: |
| Macbeth | Mac III.iv.104 | If trembling I inhabit then, protest me | If trembling I inhabit then, protest mee |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.i.38 | Then the charm is firm and good. | Then the Charme is firme and good. |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.i.75 | More potent than the first. | More potent then the first. |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.i.81 | Then live Macduff; what need I fear of thee? | Then liue Macduffe: what need I feare of thee? |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.ii.42 | Then you'll buy 'em to sell again. | Then you'l by 'em to sell againe. |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.ii.56 | Then the liars and swearers are fools; for there are | Then the Liars and Swearers are Fools: for there are |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.ii.77 | Accounted dangerous folly. Why then, alas, | Accounted dangerous folly. Why then (alas) |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.47 | Shall have more vices than it had before, | Shall haue more vices then it had before, |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.48 | More suffer, and more sundry ways, than ever, | More suffer, and more sundry wayes then euer, |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.66.1 | Than such a one to reign. | Then such an one to reigne. |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.86 | Than summer-seeming lust; and it hath been | Then Summer-seeming Lust: and it hath bin |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.110 | Oftener upon her knees than on her feet, | Oftner vpon her knees, then on her feet, |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.130 | No less in truth than life. My first false speaking | No lesse in truth then life. My first false speaking |
| Macbeth | Mac IV.iii.212.2 | And I must be from thence! | And I must be from thence? |
| Macbeth | Mac V.i.35 | then, 'tis time to do't. – Hell is murky! – Fie, my lord, | then 'tis time to doo't: Hell is murky. Fye, my Lord, |
| Macbeth | Mac V.i.70 | More needs she the divine than the physician. | More needs she the Diuine, then the Physitian: |
| Macbeth | Mac V.ii.22.2 | Who then shall blame | Who then shall blame |
| Macbeth | Mac V.iii.7 | Shall e'er have power upon thee.’ Then fly, false thanes, | Shall ere haue power vpon thee. Then fly false Thanes, |
| Macbeth | Mac V.v.26 | And then is heard no more. It is a tale | And then is heard no more. It is a Tale |
| Macbeth | Mac V.vi.17.1 | Than any is in hell. | Then any is in hell. |
| Macbeth | Mac V.vi.47.1 | Than terms can give thee out. | Then tearmes can giue thee out. |
| Macbeth | Mac V.vi.62 | Then yield thee, coward; | Then yeeld thee Coward, |
| Macbeth | Mac V.vi.82.2 | Then he is dead? | Then he is dead? |
| Macbeth | Mac V.vi.84 | Must not be measured by his worth, for then | Must not be measur'd by his worth, for then |
| Macbeth | Mac V.vi.86.2 | Why then, God's soldier be he. | Why then, Gods Soldier be he: |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.i.7 | My strength can give you. Then no more remains | My strength can giue you: Then no more remaines |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.ii.2 | composition with the King of Hungary, why then all the | composition with the King of Hungary, why then all the |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.5 | More grave and wrinkled than the aims and ends | More graue, and wrinkled, then the aimes, and ends |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.7 | My holy sir, none better knows than you | My holy Sir, none better knowes then you |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.27 | Becomes more mocked than feared, so our decrees, | More mock'd, then fear'd: so our Decrees, |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.34.1 | Than in Lord Angelo. | Then in Lord Angelo. |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.iii.53 | Is more to bread than stone. Hence shall we see, | Is more to bread then stone: hence shall we see |
| Measure for Measure | MM I.iv.12 | Then, if you speak, you must not show your face, | Then if you speake, you must not show your face; |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.6 | Than fall, and bruise to death. Alas, this gentleman, | Then fall, and bruise to death: alas, this gentleman |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.21 | Guiltier than him they try; what's open made to justice, | Guiltier then him they try; what's open made to Iustice, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.102 | Very well: you being then, if you be remembered, | Very well: you being then (if you be remembred) |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.105 | Why, very well: I telling you then, if you be | Why, very well: I telling you then (if you be |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.110 | Why, very well then – | Why very well then. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.127 | Why, very well then. I hope here be truths. | Why very well then: I hope here be truthes. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.149 | worst thing about him. Good, then; if his face be the | worst thing about him: good then: if his face be the |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.158 | person than any of us all. | person then any of vs all. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.191 | Hath she had any more than one husband? | Hath she had any more then one husband? |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.196 | hang then. Get you gone, and let me hear no more of | hang them: get you gon, and let me heare no more of |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.i.223 | then. If your worship will take order for the drabs and | then: if your worship will take order for the drabs and |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.42 | I had a brother then; heaven keep your honour. | I had a brother then; heauen keepe your honour. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.68 | And you were Isabel; should it then be thus? | And you were Isabell: should it then be thus? |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.78 | And mercy then will breathe within your lips, | And mercie then will breathe within your lips |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.86 | With less respect than we do minister | With lesse respect then we doe minister |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.101 | For then I pity those I do not know, | For then I pittie those I doe not know, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.117 | Than the soft myrtle; but man, proud man, | Then the soft Mertill: But man, proud man, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.ii.170 | Than woman's lightness? Having waste ground enough, | Then womans lightnesse? hauing waste ground enough, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.9 | I would do more than that, if more were needful. | I would do more then that, if more were needfull |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.15 | Than die for this. | Then dye for this. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.26 | So then it seems your most offenceful act | So then it seemes your most offence full act |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iii.28 | Then was your sin of heavier kind than his. | Then was your sin of heauier kinde then his. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.33 | Than to demand what 'tis. Your brother cannot live. | Then to demand what 'tis: your Brother cannot liue. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.51 | Say you so? Then I shall pose you quickly. | Say you so: then I shall poze you quickly. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.56 | I had rather give my body than my soul. | I had rather giue my body, then my soule. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.58.1 | Stand more for number than accompt. | Stand more for number, then for accompt. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.81 | Than beauty could, displayed. But mark me; | Then beauty could displaied: But marke me, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.104.2 | Then must your brother die. | Then must your brother die. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.107 | Than that a sister, by redeeming him, | Then that a sister, by redeeming him |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.109 | Were not you then as cruel as the sentence | Were not you then as cruell as the Sentence, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.116 | A merriment than a vice. | A merriment, then a vice. |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.133 | Than faults may shake our frames – let me be bold. | Then faults may shake our frames) let me be bold; |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.146 | Which seems a little fouler than it is, | Which seemes a little fouler then it is, |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.184 | Then, Isabel, live chaste, and, brother, die. | Then Isabell liue chaste, and brother die; |
| Measure for Measure | MM II.iv.185 | More than our brother is our chastity. | "More then our Brother, is our Chastitie. |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.i.1 | So then you hope of pardon from Lord Angelo? | So then you hope of pardon from Lord Angelo? |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.i.80 | Than a perpetual honour. Dar'st thou die? | Then a perpetuall Honor. Dar'st thou die? |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.i.129 | The pendent world; or to be worse than worst | The pendant world: or to be worse then worst |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.i.192 | brother die by the law than my son should be unlawfully | brother die by the Law, then my sonne should be vnlawfullie |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.9 | being richer than innocency, stands for the facing. | being richer then Innocency, stands for the facing. |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.63 | Well, then, imprison him. If imprisonment be the | Well, then imprison him: If imprisonment be the |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.77 | You will not bail me then, sir? | You will not baile me then Sir? |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.78 | Then, Pompey, nor now. What news abroad, | Then Pompey, nor now: what newes abroad |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.101 | How should he be made, then? | How should he be made then? |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.225 | Rather rejoicing to see another merry than | Rather reioycing to see another merry, then |
| Measure for Measure | MM III.ii.254 | Than by self-offences weighing. | Then by selfe-offences weighing. |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.i.54 | Take then this your companion by the hand, | Take then this your companion by the hand |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.47 | is a more penitent trade than your bawd. He doth | is a more penitent Trade then your Bawd: he doth |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.73.3 | They will then, ere't be long. | They will then er't be long. |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.81 | Which he corrects, then were he tyrannous, | Which he corrects, then were he tirrannous, |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.122 | than we must yet deliver. Thus fail not to do your office, | then we must yet deliuer. Thus faile not to doe your Office, |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.155 | to the law than Angelo who hath sentenced him. To make | to the Law, then Angelo who hath sentenc'd him. To make |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.174 | upon this, more than thanks and good fortune, by the | vpon this, more then thankes and good fortune, by the |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.ii.184 | persuasion can with ease attempt you, I will go further than | perswasion, can with ease attempt you, I wil go further then |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.7 | ready money. Marry, then ginger was not much in request, | readie money: marrie then, Ginger was not much in request, |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.8 | for the old women were all dead. Then is there | for the olde Women were all dead. Then is there |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.11 | which now peaches him a beggar. Then have we here | which now peaches him a beggar. Then haue we heere, |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.61 | me, come to my ward, for thence will not I today. | me, come to my Ward: for thence will not I to day. |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.97 | A league below the city, and from thence, | A League below the Citie: and from thence, |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.136 | This letter then to Friar Peter give. | This Letter then to Friar Peter giue, |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.160 | He's a better woodman than thou tak'st him for. | he's a better woodman then thou tak'st him for. |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iii.171 | Sir, your company is fairer than honest. Rest you | Sir your company is fairer then honest, rest you |
| Measure for Measure | MM IV.iv.12 | which shall then have no power to stand against us. | which shall then haue no power to stand against vs. |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.44 | Than this is all as true as it is strange. | Then this is all as true, as it is strange; |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.49 | There is another comfort than this world, | There is another comfort, then this world, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.74.1 | As then the messenger – | As then the Messenger. |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.79.2 | I wish you now, then. | I wish you now then, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.81 | A business for yourself, pray heaven you then | A businesse for your selfe: pray heauen you then |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.115 | Then, O you blessed ministers above, | Then oh you blessed Ministers aboue |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.175 | A widow, then? | A Widow then? |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.177 | Why, you are nothing then. Neither maid, widow, | Why you are nothing then: neither Maid, Widow, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.188 | He was drunk, then, my lord. It can be no better. | He was drunk then, my Lord, it can be no better. |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.198.1 | Charges she more than me? | Charges she moe then me? |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.272 | Not better than he, by her own report. | Not better then he, by her owne report. |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.298 | Then is your cause gone too. The Duke's unjust, | Then is your cause gone too: The Duke's vniust, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.307 | To call him villain? And then to glance from him | To call him villaine; and then to glance from him, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.312 | Dare no more stretch this finger of mine than he | No more stretch this finger of mine, then he |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.332 | fool, and a coward, as you then reported him to be? | foole, and a coward, as you then reported him to be? |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.357 | This may prove worse than hanging. | This may proue worse then hanging. |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.364 | I should be guiltier than my guiltiness | I should be guiltier then my guiltinesse, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.367 | Hath looked upon my passes. Then, good prince, | Hath look'd vpon my passes. Then good Prince, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.370 | Immediate sentence, then, and sequent death | Immediate sentence then, and sequent death, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.378.1 | Than at the strangeness of it. | Then at the strangenesse of it. |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.379 | Your friar is now your prince. As I was then | Your Frier is now your Prince: As I was then |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.390 | Than let him so be lost. O most kind maid, | Then let him so be lost: oh most kinde Maid, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.395 | Than that which lives to fear. Make it your comfort, | Then that which liues to feare: make it your comfort, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.409 | Then, Angelo, thy faults thus manifested, | Then Angelo, thy fault's thus manifested; |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.473 | That I crave death more willingly than mercy. | That I craue death more willingly then mercy, |
| Measure for Measure | MM V.i.478 | That apprehends no further than this world, | That apprehends no further then this world, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.28 | Vailing her high-top lower than her ribs | Vailing her high top lower then her ribs |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.46.1 | Why then you are in love. | Why then you are in loue. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.47 | Not in love neither? Then let us say you are sad | Not in loue neither: then let vs say you are sad |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.82 | Than my heart cool with mortifying groans. | Then my heart coole with mortifying grones. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.105 | Well, we will leave you then till dinner-time. | Well, we will leaue you then till dinner time. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.115 | more than any man in all Venice. His reasons are as two | more then any man in all Venice, his reasons are two |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.125 | Than my faint means would grant continuance. | Then my faint meanes would grant continuance: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.133 | To unburden all my plots and purposes | To vnburthen all my plots and purposes, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.157 | Than if you had made waste of all I have. | Then if you had made waste of all I haue: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.158 | Then do but say to me what I should do | Then doe but say to me what I should doe |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.i.162 | And she is fair, and, fairer than that word, | And she is faire, and fairer then that word, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.16 | good to be done than be one of the twenty to follow | good to be done, then be one of the twentie to follow |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.43 | Then there is the County Palatine. | Than is there the Countie Palentine. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.49 | with a bone in his mouth than to either of these. | with a bone in his mouth, then to either of these: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.55 | why he hath a horse better than the Neapolitan's, a better | why he hath a horse better then the Neopolitans, a better |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.56 | bad habit of frowning than the Count Palatine; he is | bad habite of frowning then the Count Palentine, he is |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.62 | What say you then to Falconbridge, the young | What say you then to Fauconbridge, the yong |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.83 | is best he is a little worse than a man, and when he is | is best, he is a little worse then a man, and when he is |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.84 | worst he is little better than a beast. An the worst fall | worst, he is little better then a beast: and the worst fall |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.98 | by some other sort than your father's imposition, | by some other sort then your Fathers imposition, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.ii.125 | shrive me than wive me. Come, Nerissa. Sirrah, go | shriue me then wiue me. Come Nerrissa, sirra go |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.23 | thieves and land thieves, I mean pirates; and then there | theeues, and land theeues, I meane Pyrats, and then there |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.65 | Well then, your bond. And let me see; but hear you, | Well then, your bond: and let me see, but heare you, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.84 | Who then conceiving, did in eaning time | Who then conceauing, did in eaning time |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.101 | Three months from twelve, then, let me see, the rate – | Three months from twelue, then let me see the rate. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.111 | Well then, it now appears you need my help. | Well then, it now appeares you neede my helpe: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.112 | Go to, then. You come to me and you say, | Goe to then, you come to me, and you say, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV I.iii.169 | Then meet me forthwith at the notary's; | Then meete me forthwith at the Notaries, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.i.20 | Yourself, renowned Prince, then stood as fair | Your selfe (renowned Prince) than stood as faire |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.i.45.2 | Good fortune then, | Good fortune then, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.32 | father who, being more than sand-blind, high-gravel-blind, | Father, who being more then sand-blinde, high grauel blinde, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.87 | Thou hast got more hair on thy chin than Dobbin my | thou hast got more haire on thy chin, then Dobbin my |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.89 | It should seem then that Dobbin's tail grows | It should seeme then that Dobbins taile growes |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.91 | have on my face when I last saw him. | taile then I haue of my face when I lost saw him. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.144 | More guarded than his fellows'. See it done. | More garded then his fellowes: see it done. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.151 | maids is a simple coming-in for one man. And then to | maides is a simple comming in for one man, and then to |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.167 | Why then you must. But hear thee, Gratiano: | Why then you must: but heare thee Gratiano, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ii.178 | Talk with respect, and swear but now and then, | Talke with respect, and sweare but now and than, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.iv.13 | And whiter than the paper it writ on | And whiter then the paper it writ on, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.v.23 | say you shall see a masque, but if you do, then it was not | you shall see a Maske, but if you doe, then it was not |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.v.30 | Clamber not you up to the casements then, | Clamber not you vp to the casements then, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.v.46 | More than the wild-cat. Drones hive not with me; | More then the wilde-cat: drones hiue not with me, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.6 | To seal love's bonds new-made than they are wont | To steale loues bonds new made, then they are wont |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.13 | Are with more spirit chased than enjoyed. | Are with more spirit chased then enioy'd. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.24 | I'll watch as long for you then. Approach. | Ile watch as long for you then: approach |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vi.68 | Than to be under sail and gone tonight. | Then to be vnder saile, and gone to night. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.12 | If you choose that, then I am yours withal. | If you choose that, then I am yours withall. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.21 | I'll then nor give nor hazard aught for lead. | Ile then nor giue nor hazard ought for lead. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.34 | But more than these, in love I do deserve. | But more then these, in loue I doe deserue. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.55 | Was set in worse than gold. They have in England | Was set in worse then gold! They haue in England |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.62.1 | Then I am yours. | Then I am yours. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.vii.75 | Then farewell heat, and welcome frost. | Then farewell heate, and welcome frost: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.27 | Not learning more than the fond eye doth teach, | Not learning more then the fond eye doth teach, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.34 | Why then, to thee, thou silver treasure house. | Why then to thee thou Siluer treasure house, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.44 | How many then should cover that stand bare, | How many then should couer that stand bare? |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.46 | How much low peasantry would then be gleaned | How much low pleasantry would then be gleaned |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV II.ix.59 | Did I deserve no more than a fool's head? | Did I deserue no more then a fooles head, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.i.27 | fledged, and then it is the complexion of them all to | fledg'd, and then it is the complexion of them al to |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.i.36 | hers than between jet and ivory, more between your | hers, then betweene Iet and Iuorie, more betweene your |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.i.37 | bloods than there is between red wine and Rhenish. But | bloods, then there is betweene red wine and rennish: but |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.11 | How to choose right, but then I am forsworn. | How to choose right, but then I am forsworne, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.17 | Mine own I would say; but if mine then yours, | Mine owne I would say: but of mine then yours, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.26 | Upon the rack, Bassanio? Then confess | Vpon the racke Bassanio, then confesse |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.35.1 | Well then, confess and live. | Well then, confesse and liue. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.40 | Away then, I am locked in one of them; | Away then, I am lockt in one of them, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.44 | Then if he lose he makes a swanlike end, | Then if he loose he makes a Swan-like end, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.48 | And what is music then? Then music is | And what is musique than? Than musique is |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.55 | Than young Alcides when he did redeem | Then yong Alcides, when he did redeeme |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.62 | I view the fight than thou that mak'st the fray. | I view the sight, then thou that mak'st the fray. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.101 | To entrap the wisest. Therefore thou gaudy gold, | To intrap the wisest. Therefore then thou gaudie gold, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.105 | Which rather threaten'st than dost promise aught, | Which rather threatnest then dost promise ought, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.106 | Thy paleness moves me more than eloquence, | Thy palenesse moues me more then eloquence, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.123 | Faster than gnats in cobwebs. But her eyes, | Faster then gnats in cobwebs: but her eies, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.161 | But she may learn; happier than this, | But she may learne: happier then this, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.184 | Parts from this finger, then parts life from hence, | Parts from this finger, then parts life from hence, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.185 | O then be bold to say Bassanio's dead. | O then be bold to say Bassanio's dead. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.200 | No more pertains to me, my lord, than you. | No more pertaines to me my Lord then you; |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.256 | And then I told you true; and yet, dear lady, | And then I told you true: and yet deere Ladie, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.259 | My state was nothing, I should then have told you | My state was nothing, I should then haue told you |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.260 | That I was worse than nothing; for indeed | That I was worse then nothing: for indeede |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.287 | Than twenty times the value of the sum | Then twenty times the value of the summe |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.296 | Than any that draws breath in Italy. | Then any that drawes breath in Italie. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.300 | Double six thousand and then treble that, | Double sixe thousand, and then treble that, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.ii.304 | And then away to Venice to your friend! | And then away to Venice to your friend: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.iii.36 | To see me pay his debt, and then I care not. | To see me pay his debt, and then I care not. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.iv.9 | Than customary bounty can enforce you. | Then customary bounty can enforce you. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.iv.72 | I could not do withal. Then I'll repent, | I could not doe withall: then Ile repent, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.13 | Truly then, I fear you are damned both by | Truly then I feare you are damned both by |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.38 | than reason; but if she be less than an honest woman, | then reason: but if she be lesse then an honest woman, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.39 | she is indeed more than I took her for. | shee is indeed more then I tooke her for. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.46 | Then bid them prepare dinner. | then bid them prepare dinner. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.49 | Will you cover then, sir? | Will you couer than sir? |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV III.v.84 | Then, howsome'er thou speak'st, 'mong other things | Then how som ere thou speakst 'mong other things, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.19 | To the last hour of act, and then 'tis thought | To the last houre of act, and then 'tis thought |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.41 | A weight of carrion flesh than to receive | A weight of carrion flesh, then to receiue |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.60 | More than a lodged hate and a certain loathing | More then a lodg'd hate, and a certaine loathing |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.79 | As seek to soften that – than which what's harder? – | As seeke to soften that, then which what harder? |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.95 | Why sweat they under burdens? Let their beds | Why sweate they vnder burthens? Let their beds |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.118 | Than to live still, and write mine epitaph. | Then to liue still, and write mine Epitaph. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.179.2 | Then must the Jew be merciful. | Then must the Iew be mercifull. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.186 | The throned monarch better than his crown. | The throned Monarch better then his Crowne. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.193 | And earthly power doth then show likest God's | And earthly power doth then shew likest Gods |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.241.2 | Why then, thus it is: | Why then thus it is: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.248 | How much more elder art thou than thy looks! | How much more elder art thou then thy lookes? |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.265 | Than is her custom; it is still her use | Then is her custome. It is still her vse |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.294 | Had been her husband, rather than a Christian. | Had beene her husband, rather then a Christian. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.305 | Take then thy bond, take thou thy pound of flesh, | Then take thy bond, take thou thy pound of flesh, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.313 | Thou shalt have justice more than thou desir'st. | Thou shalt haue iustice more then thou desirest. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.315 | I take this offer then. Pay the bond thrice | I take this offer then, pay the bond thrice, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.324 | Or less than a just pound, be it but so much | Or lesse then a iust pound, be it so much |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.342 | Why, then the devil give him good of it! | Why then the Deuill giue him good of it: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV IV.i.431 | There's more depends on this than on the value. | There's more depends on this then on the valew, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.95 | Until a king be by, and then his state | Vntill a King be by, and then his state |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.100 | Methinks it sounds much sweeter than by day. | Methinkes it sounds much sweeter then by day? |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.106 | No better a musician than the wren. | No better a Musitian then the Wren? |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.138 | No more than I am well acquitted of. | No more then I am wel acquitted of. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.140 | It must appear in other ways than words, | It must appeare in other waies then words, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.163 | No higher than thyself, the judge's clerk, | No higher then thy selfe, the Iudges Clearke, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.181 | Deserved it too; and then the boy, his clerk | Deseru'd it too: and then the Boy his Clearke |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.202 | You would not then have parted with the ring. | You would not then haue parted with the Ring: |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.236 | Well, do you so. Let not me take him then! | Well, doe you so: let not me take him then, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.254 | Then you shall be his surety. Give him this, | Then you shall be his suretie: giue him this, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.255 | And bid him keep it better than the other. | And bid him keepe it better then the other. |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.275 | Than you expect. Unseal this letter soon, | Then you expect: vnseale this letter soone, |
| The Merchant of Venice | MV V.i.285 | When I am absent, then lie with my wife. | When I am absent, then lie with my wife. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.153 | By these gloves, then 'twas he. | By these gloues, then 'twas he. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.157 | By this hat, then he in the red face had it. For | By this hat, then he in the red face had it: for |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.166 | Ay, you spake in Latin then too. But 'tis no | I, you spake in Latten then to: but 'tis no |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.183 | I had rather than forty shillings I had my Book | I had rather then forty shillings I had my booke |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.224 | I will do a greater thing than that, upon your | I will doe a greater thing then that, vpon your |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.i.292 | I'll rather be unmannerly than troublesome. | Ile rather be vnmannerly, then troublesome: |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iii.29 | Why then, let kibes ensue. | Why then let Kibes ensue. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iii.58 | Then did the sun on dunghill shine. | Then did the Sun on dung-hill shine. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iii.71 | And by my side wear steel? Then Lucifer take all! | And by my side weare Steele? then Lucifer take all. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iv.125 | woman in Windsor knows more of Anne's mind than | woman in Windsor knowes more of Ans minde then |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW I.iv.126 | I do, nor can do more than I do with her, I thank heaven. | I doe, nor can doe more then I doe with her, I thanke heauen. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.6 | You are not young, no more am I. Go to, then, | you are not yong, no more am I: goe to then, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.7 | there's sympathy. You are merry, so am I. Ha, ha, then | there's simpathie: you are merry, so am I: ha, ha, then |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.25 | company. What should I say to him? I was then frugal | Company: what should I say to him? I was then / Frugall |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.37 | Well, I do then. Yet I say I could show | Well: I doe then: yet I say, I could shew |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.58 | place together than the Hundredth Psalm to the tune of | place together, then the hundred Psalms to the tune of |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.171 | what he gets more of her than sharp words, let it lie on | what hee gets more of her, then sharpe words, let it lye on |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.i.213 | Have with you. I had rather hear them scold than | Haue with you: I had rather heare them scold, then |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.2 | Why then, the world's mine oyster, | Why then the world's mine Oyster, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.35 | Good maid, then. | Good maid then. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.83 | Ay, forsooth; and then you may | I, forsooth: and then you may |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.114 | life than she does. Do what she will, say what she will, | life then she do's: doe what shee will, say what she will, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.120 | Nay, but do so, then – and, look | Nay, but doe so then, and looke |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.135 | make more of thy old body than I have done. Will they | make more of thy olde body then I haue done: will they |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.162 | better plight for a lender than you are, the which hath | better plight for a Lender, then you are: the which hath |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.208 | Of what quality was your love, then? | Of what qualitie was your loue then? |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.219 | admittance, authentic in your place and person, generally | admittance, authenticke in your place and person, generally |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.237 | commend themselves. I could drive her then from the | commend themselues, I could driue her then from the |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.290 | than my wife with herself. Then she plots, then she | then my wife with her selfe. Then she plots, then shee |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.291 | ruminates, then she devises. And what they think in | ruminates, then shee deuises: and what they thinke in |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.ii.296 | Page. I will about it. Better three hours too soon than a | Page. I will about it, better three houres too soone, then a |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.iii.56 | By gar, then I have as much mockvater as de | By gar, then I haue as much Mock-vater as de |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW II.iii.88 | Let us wag, then. | Let vs wag then. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.6 | than follow him like a dwarf. | then follow him like a dwarfe. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.36 | together. Well, I will take him, then torture my wife, | together. Well, I will take him, then torture my wife, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.43 | praised for this than mocked, for it is as positive as the | praisd for this, then mock'd, for it is as possitiue, as the |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.ii.51 | more money than I'll speak of. | more mony / Then Ile speake of. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.37 | Go to, then. We'll use this unwholesome | Go-too then: we'l vse this vnwholsome |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.115 | as his peril. I had rather than a thousand pound he were | as his perill. I had rather then a thousand pound he were |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.142 | without cause, why then make sport at me; then let me | without cause, / Why then make sport at me, then let me |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iii.192 | Heaven make you better than your | Heauen make you better then your |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.3.1 | Alas, how then? | Alas, how then? |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.16 | Than stamps in gold or sums in sealed bags. | Then stampes in Gold, or summes in sealed bagges: |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.21 | Cannot attain it, why then – hark you hither. | Cannot attaine it, why then harke you hither. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.63 | dole. They can tell you how things go better than I can. | dole, they can tell you how things go, better then I can: |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.iv.90 | Till then, farewell, sir. She must needs go in; | Till then, farewell Sir, she must needs go in, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.47 | then judge of my merit. | then iudge of my merit. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.102 | of a peck, hilt to point, heel to head; and then, to | of a Pecke, hilt to point, heele to head. And then to |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.108 | of this bath, when I was more than half stewed in | of this Bath (when I was more then halfe stew'd in |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.114 | you have suffered all this. My suit, then, is desperate? | you haue sufferd all this. My suite then is desperate: |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW III.v.122 | Is it? I will then address me to my appointment. | Is it? I will then addresse mee to my appointment: |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.i.27 | than polecats, sure. | then Powlcats, sure. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.i.75 | He is a better scholar than I thought he | He is a better scholler then I thought he |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.39 | Why, then, you are utterly shamed, and | Why then you are vtterly sham'd, & |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.41 | with him, away with him! Better shame than murder. | with him, away with him: Better shame, then murther. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.61 | I'll go out, then. | Ile go out then. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.69 | rather than a mischief. | rather then a mischiefe. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.109 | way then to unfool me again? Set down the basket, | way then to vnfoole me againe. Set downe the basket |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.ii.210 | Come, to the forge with it, then. Shape | Come, to the Forge with it, then |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.iv.7 | Than thee with wantonness. Now doth thy honour stand, | Then thee with wantonnes: Now doth thy honor stand |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.iv.16 | There is no better way than that they spoke of. | There is no better way then that they spoke of. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.iv.55 | Then let them all encircle him about, | Then let them all encircle him about, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.v.56 | taught me more wit than ever I learned before in my | taught me more wit, then euer I learn'd before in my |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.v.99 | suffered more for their sakes, more than the villainous | suffer'd more for their sakes; more then the villanous |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW IV.vi.5 | A hundred pound in gold more than your loss. | A hundred pound in gold, more then your losse. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.iii.10 | than a great deal of heartbreak. | then a great deale of heart-breake. |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.9 | beast – O Jove, a beastly fault – and then another fault | beast, (O Ioue, a beastly fault:) and then another fault, |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.68 | More fertile-fresh than all the field to see; | Mote fertile-fresh then all the Field to see: |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.108 | Become the forest better than the town? | Become the Forrest better then the Towne? |
| The Merry Wives of Windsor | MW V.v.186 | Upon my life, then, you took the wrong. | Vpon my life then, you tooke the wrong. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.9 | And then the moon – like to a silver bow | And then the Moone, like to a siluer bow, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.12 | Stir up the Athenian youth to merriments. | Stirre vp the Athenian youth to merriments, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.41 | I beg the ancient privilege of Athens: | I beg the ancient priuiledge of Athens; |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.77 | Than that which, withering on the virgin thorn, | Then that which withering on the virgin thorne, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.100 | As well possessed. My love is more than his, | As well possest: my loue is more then his: |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.103 | And – which is more than all these boasts can be – | And (which is more then all these boasts can be) |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.105 | Why should not I then prosecute my right? | Why should not I then prosecute my right? |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.119 | Or else the law of Athens yields you up – | Or else the Law of Athens yeelds you vp |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.150 | If then true lovers have been ever crossed | If then true Louers haue beene euer crost, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.152 | Then let us teach our trial patience, | Then let vs teach our triall patience, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.159 | From Athens is her house remote seven leagues; | From Athens is her house remou'd seuen leagues, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.162 | And to that place the sharp Athenian law | And to that place, the sharpe Athenian Law |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.163 | Cannot pursue us. If thou lovest me, then | Cannot pursue vs. If thou lou'st me, then |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.176 | In number more than ever women spoke, – | (In number more then euer women spoke) |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.184 | More tuneable than lark to shepherd's ear | More tuneable then Larke to shepheards eare, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.205 | Seemed Athens as a paradise to me. | Seem'd Athens like a Paradise to mee. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.206 | O then, what graces in my love do dwell | O then, what graces in my Loue do dwell, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.213 | Through Athens gates have we devised to steal. | Through Athens gates, haue we deuis'd to steale. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.218 | And thence from Athens turn away our eyes | And thence from Athens turne away our eyes |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.227 | Through Athens I am thought as fair as she. | Through Athens I am thought as faire as she. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.i.247 | Then to the wood will he tomorrow night | Then to the wood will he, to morrow night |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.ii.5 | thought fit through all Athens to play in our interlude | thought fit through all Athens, to play in our Enterlude |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.ii.9 | on; then read the names of the actors; and so grow to a | on: then read the names of the Actors: and so grow on to a |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND I.ii.91 | and then you will play bare-faced! But, masters, here | and then you will play bare-fac'd. But masters here |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.7 | Swifter than the moon's sphere, | swifter then ye Moons sphere; |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.53 | Then slip I from her bum. Down topples she, | Then slip I from her bum, downe topples she, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.55 | And then the whole choir hold their hips and laugh, | And then the whole quire hold their hips, and loffe, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.64 | Then I must be thy lady. But I know | Then I must be thy Lady: but I know |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.118 | Do you amend it, then! It lies in you. | Do you amend it then, it lies in you, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.131 | Following – her womb then rich with my young squire – | Following (her wombe then rich with my yong squire) |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.179 | The next thing then she, waking, looks upon – | The next thing when she waking lookes vpon, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.210 | Than to be used as you use your dog? | Then to be vsed as you doe your dogge. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.225 | Then how can it be said I am alone | Then how can it be said I am alone, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.260 | A sweet Athenian lady is in love | A sweet Athenian Lady is in loue |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.264 | By the Athenian garments he hath on. | By the Athenian garments he hath on. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.i.266 | More fond on her than she upon her love. | More fond on her, then she vpon her loue; |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.2 | Then for the third part of a minute hence: | Then for the third part of a minute hence, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.8 | Then to your offices, and let me rest. | Then to your offices, and let me rest. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.56 | So then two bosoms and a single troth. | So then two bosomes, and a single troth. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.57 | Then by your side no bed-room me deny, | Then by your side, no bed-roome me deny, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.69 | And then end life when I end loyalty. | And then end life, when I end loyalty: |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.73 | But Athenian found I none | But Athenian finde I none, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.77 | Weeds of Athens he doth wear. | Weedes of Athens he doth weare: |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.79 | Despised the Athenian maid; | Despised the Athenian maide: |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.99 | If so, my eyes are oftener washed than hers. | If so, my eyes are oftner washt then hers. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.116 | Yet Hermia still loves you. Then be content. | Yet Hermia still loues you; then be content. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND II.ii.161 | No? Then I well perceive you are not nigh. | No, then I well perceiue you are not nye, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.30 | than your lion living; and we ought look to't. | then your Lyon liuing: and wee ought to looke to it. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.50 | Why, then, may you leave a casement of the | Why then may you leaue a casement of the |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.55 | present the person of Moonshine. Then there is another | present the person of Moone-shine. Then there is another |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.66 | If that may be, then all is well. Come, sit down | If that may be, then all is well. Come, sit downe |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.i.81 | A stranger Pyramus than e'er played here. | A stranger Piramus, then ere plaid here. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.2 | Then what it was that next came in her eye, | Then what it was that next came in her eye, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.10 | That work for bread upon Athenian stalls, | That worke for bread vpon Athenian stals, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.26 | He ‘ Murder!’ cries, and help from Athens calls. | He murther cries, and helpe from Athens cals. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.35 | This falls out better than I could devise! | This fals out better then I could deuise: |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.36 | But hast thou yet latched the Athenian's eyes | But hast thou yet lacht the Athenians eyes, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.39 | And the Athenian woman by his side, | And the Athenian woman by his side, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.41 | Stand close. This is the same Athenian. | Stand close, this is the same Athenian. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.66 | Of maiden's patience. Hast thou slain him then? | Of maidens patience. Hast thou slaine him then? |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.73 | Than thine, thou serpent, never adder stung. | Then thine (thou serpent) neuer Adder stung. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.77 | I pray thee, tell me then that he is well. | I pray thee tell me then that he is well. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.92 | Then fate o'errules, that, one man holding truth, | Then fate ore-rules, that one man holding troth, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.94 | About the wood go swifter than the wind, | About the wood, goe swifter then the winde, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.95 | And Helena of Athens look thou find. | And Helena of Athens looke thou finde. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.101 | Swifter than arrow from the Tartar's bow. | Swifter then arrow from the Tartars bowe. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.118 | Then will two at once woo one – | Then will two at once wooe one, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.188 | Than all you fiery oes and eyes of light, | Then all yon fierie oes, and eies of light. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.235 | This you should pity rather than despise. | This you should pittie, rather then despise. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.249 | Thou canst compel no more than she entreat. | Thou canst compell, no more then she entreate. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.250 | Thy threats have no more strength than her weak prayers. | Thy threats haue no more strength then her weak praise. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.254 | I say I love thee more than he can do. | I say, I loue thee more then he can do. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.271 | What? Can you do me greater harm than hate? | What, can you do me greater harme then hate? |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.276 | Why then, you left me – O, the gods forbid! – | Why then you left me (O the gods forbid |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.304 | Because she is something lower than myself | Because she is something lower then my selfe, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.315 | To Athens will I bear my folly back | To Athens will I beare my folly backe, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.342 | Your hands than mine are quicker for a fray. | Your hands then mine, are quicker for a fray, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.349 | By the Athenian garments he had on? | By the Athenian garments he hath on? |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.351 | That I have 'nointed an Athenian's eyes. | That I haue nointed an Athenians eies, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.361 | Then stir Demetrius up with bitter wrong, | Then stirre Demetrius vp with bitter wrong; |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.366 | Then crush this herb into Lysander's eye – | Then crush this hearbe into Lysanders eie, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.368 | To take from thence all error with his might, | To take from thence all error, with his might, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.372 | And back to Athens shall the lovers wend | And backe to Athens shall the Louers wend |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.376 | And then I will her charmed eye release | And then I will her charmed eie release |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.403.2 | Follow me then | Follow me then |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.414 | When I come where he calls, then he is gone. | When I come where he cals, then he's gone. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.415 | The villain is much lighter-heeled than I. | The villaine is much lighter heel'd then I: |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.426 | Nay, then thou mockest me. Thou shalt buy this dear | Nay then thou mock'st me; thou shalt buy this deere, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND III.ii.433 | That I may back to Athens by daylight | That I may backe to Athens by day-light, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.50 | For she his hairy temples then had rounded | For she his hairy temples then had rounded, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.58 | I then did ask of her her changeling child, | I then did aske of her, her changeling childe, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.64 | From off the head of this Athenian swain, | From off the head of this Athenian swaine; |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.66 | May all to Athens back again repair | May all to Athens backe againe repaire, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.81 | Than common sleep of all these five the sense. | Then common sleepe; of all these, fine the sense. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.94 | Then, my queen, in silence sad, | Then my Queene in silence sad, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.97 | Swifter than the wandering moon. | Swifter then the wandering Moone. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.151 | Was to be gone from Athens where we might | Was to be gone from Athens, where we might be |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.152 | Without the peril of the Athenian law... | Without the perill of the Athenian Law. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.183 | Away with us to Athens. Three and three, | Away, with vs to Athens; three and three, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.i.197 | Why, then, we are awake. Let's follow him, | Why then we are awake; lets follow him, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.ii.5 | If he come not, then the play is marred. It goes not | If he come not, then the play is mar'd. It goes not |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.ii.8 | Athens able to discharge Pyramus but he. | Athens, able to discharge Piramus but he. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.ii.10 | man in Athens. | man in Athens. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND IV.ii.27 | me not what; for if I tell you, I am not true Athenian. – I | not what. For if I tell you, I am no true Athenian. I |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.2 | More strange than true. I never may believe | More strange then true. I neuer may beleeue |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.6 | More than cool reason ever comprehends. | more / Then coole reason euer comprehends. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.9 | One sees more devils than vast hell can hold. | One sees more diuels then vaste hell can hold; |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.30.2 | More than to us | More then to vs, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.45 | By an Athenian eunuch to the harp.’ | By an Athenian Eunuch, to the Harpe. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.72 | Hard-handed men that work in Athens here, | Hard handed men, that worke in Athens heere, |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.112 | Consider then we come but in despite. | Consider then, we come but in despight. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.210 | It must be your imagination then, and not | It must be your imagination then, & not |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.212 | If we imagine no worse of them than they of | If wee imagine no worse of them then they of |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.219 | Then know that I as Snug the joiner am | Then know that I, one Snug the Ioyner am |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.262 | And then came Pyramus. | And then came Piramus. |
| A Midsummer Night's Dream | MND V.i.300 | Less than an ace, man; for he is dead. He is | Lesse then an ace man. For he is dead, he is |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.16 | expectation than you must expect of me to tell you how. | expectation, then you must expect of me to tell you how. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.26 | truer than those that are so washed. How much better is | truer, then those that are so wash'd, how much better is |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.27 | it to weep at joy than to joy at weeping! | it to weepe at ioy, then to ioy at weeping? |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.54 | It is so, indeed; he is no less than a stuffed man; | It is so indeed, he is no lesse then a stuft man: |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.80 | He is sooner caught than the pestilence, and the taker | he is sooner caught then the pestilence, and the taker |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.100 | Signor Benedick, no; for then were you a child. | Signior Benedicke, no, for then were you a childe. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.116 | Then is courtesy a turncoat. But it is certain I | Then is curtesie a turne-coate, but it is certaine I |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.164 | that were she other than she is, she were unhandsome; | that were shee other then she is, she were vnhandsome, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.231 | with love than I will get again with drinking, pick out | with loue, then I will get againe with drinking, picke out |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.252 | I look for an earthquake too, then. | I looke for an earthquake too then. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.295 | What need the bridge much broader than the flood? | What need ye bridge much broder then the flood? |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.i.305 | Then after, to her father will I break, | Then after, to her father will I breake, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.iii.25 | I had rather be a canker in a hedge than a rose | I had rather be a canker in a hedge, then a rose |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA I.iii.27 | of all than to fashion a carriage to rob love from any. In | of all, then to fashion a carriage to rob loue from any: in |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.10 | Then half Signor Benedick's tongue in Count | Then halfe signior Benedicks tongue in Count |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.19 | Too curst is more than curst. I shall lessen | Too curst is more then curst, I shall lessen |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.31 | that hath a beard is more than a youth, and he that hath | that hath a beard, is more then a youth: and he that hath |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.32 | no beard is less than a man; and he that is more than a | no beard, is lesse then a man: and hee that is more then a |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.33 | youth is not for me, and he that is less than a man, I am | youth, is not for mee: and he that is lesse then a man, I am |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.36 | Well, then, go you into hell? | Well then, goe you into hell. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.53 | than earth. Would it not grieve a woman to be | then earth, would it not grieue a woman to be |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.69 | then comes repentance and, with his bad legs, falls into | then comes repentance, and with his bad legs falls into |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.87.1 | Why, then, your visor should be thatched. | Why then your visor should be thatcht. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.127 | and angers them, and then they laugh at him and beat | and angers them, and then they laugh at him, and beat |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.134 | at, strikes him into melancholy; and then there's a | at) strikes him into melancholly, and then there's a |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.224 | than a great thaw; huddling jest upon jest with such | then a great thaw, hudling iest vpon iest, with such |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.247 | embassage to the Pygmies, rather than hold three words' | embassage to the Pigmies, rather then hould three words |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.267 | How then? Sick? | How then? sicke? |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.309 | No, sure, my lord, my mother cried; but then | No sure my Lord, my Mother cried, but then |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.i.319 | ever sad then; for I have heard my daughter say, she hath | euer sad then: for I haue heard my daughter say, she hath |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.ii.30 | Go, then; find me a meet hour to draw Don | Goe then, finde me a meete howre, to draw on |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.43 | To slander music any more than once. | To slander musicke any more then once. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.44 | It is the witness still of excellency | It is the witnesse still of excellency, / To slander Musicke any more then once. / Prince. It is the witnesse still of excellencie, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.64 | Then sigh not so, but let them go, | Then sigh not so, but let them goe, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.72 | Then sigh not so, but let them go, | Then sigh not so, &c. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.148 | Then down upon her knees she falls, weeps, | Then downe vpon her knees she falls, weepes, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.242 | I took no more pains for those thanks than | I tooke no more paines for those thankes, then |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.245 | You take pleasure then in the message? | You take pleasure then in the message. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA II.iii.251 | took no more pains for those thanks than you took pains | tooke no more paines for those thankes then you tooke paines |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.19 | To praise him more than ever man did merit. | To praise him more then euer man did merit, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.32 | Then go we near her, that her ear lose nothing | Then go we neare her that her eare loose nothing, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.50 | Of prouder stuff than that of Beatrice. | Of prowder stuffe then that of Beatrice: |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.105 | If it prove so, then loving goes by haps; | If it proue so, then louing goes by haps, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.i.116 | Believe it better than reportingly. | Beleeue it better then reportingly. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.ii.2 | and then go I toward Arragon. | and then go I toward Arragon. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.ii.70 | played their parts with Beatrice, and then the two bears | played their parts with Beatrice, and then the two Beares |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.ii.103 | wedding-day. If you love her then, tomorrow wed her; | wedding day, if you loue her, then to morrow wed her: |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.28 | Why, then, take no note of him, but let him go; | Why then take no note of him, but let him go, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.45 | Why, then, let them alone till they are sober; | Why then let them alone till they are sober, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.46 | if they make you not then the better answer, you may | if they make you not then the better answere, you may |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.67 | Why, then, depart in peace, and let the child | Why then depart in peace, and let the childe |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.88 | then all to bed. | then all to bed. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.101 | Stand thee close then under this penthouse, | Stand thee close then vnder this penthouse, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iii.136 | out more apparel than the man. But art not thou thyself | out more apparrell then the man; but art not thou thy selfe |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.iv.41 | Ye light o' love, with your heels! Then if your | Ye Light aloue with your heeles, then if your |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA III.v.14 | that is an old man and no honester than I. | that is an old man, and no honester then I. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.19 | How now! Interjections? Why, then, some be | How now! interiections? why then, some be |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.85 | Why, then are you no maiden. Leonato, | Why then you are no maiden. Leonato, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.123 | Thought I thy spirits were stronger than thy shames, | Thought I thy spirits were stronger then thy shames, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.172 | Why seek'st thou then to cover with excuse | Why seek'st thou then to couer with excuse, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.177 | Than that which maiden modesty doth warrant, | Then that which maiden modestie doth warrant, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.218 | Why, then we rack the value, then we find | Why then we racke the value, then we finde |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.228 | Than when she lived indeed. Then shall he mourn, | Then when she liu'd indeed: then shal he mourne, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.234 | Than I can lay it down in likelihood. | Then I can lay it downe in likelihood. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.277 | Why, then, God forgive me! | Why then God forgiue me. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.300 | come to take hands, and then, with public accusation, | come to take hands, and then with publike accusation |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.i.321 | Use it for my love some other way than swearing | Vse it for my loue some other way then swearing |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA IV.ii.58 | And this is more, masters, than you can deny. | And this is more masters then you can deny, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.32 | My griefs cry louder than advertisement. | My griefs cry lowder then aduertisement. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.135 | Nay, then, give him another staff; this last was | Nay then giue him another staffe, this last was |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.186 | meet; and till then, peace be with him. | meete, and till then peace be with him. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.194 | He is then a giant to an ape; but then is an ape | He is then a Giant to an Ape, but then is an Ape |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.229 | with my death than repeat over to my shame. The lady | with my death, then repeate ouer to my shame: the Ladie |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.i.283 | Tomorrow then I will expect your coming; | To morrow then I will expect your comming, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.4 | Will you then write me a sonnet in praise of | Will you then write me a Sonnet in praise of |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.43 | O, stay but till then! | O stay but till then. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.44 | ‘ Then ’ is spoken; fare you well now. And yet, | Then, is spoken: fare you well now, and yet |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.ii.72 | in monument than the bell rings and the widow weeps. | in monuments, then the Bels ring, & the Widdow weepes. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iii.31 | And then to Leonato's we will go. | And then to Leonatoes we will goe. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iii.33 | Than this for whom we rendered up this woe. | Then this for whom we rendred vp this woe. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.55 | Why, then she's mine. Sweet, let me see your face. | Why then she's mine, sweet let me see your face. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.74.2 | Why no, no more than reason. | Why no, no more then reason. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.75 | Why, then your uncle and the Prince and Claudio | Why then your Vncle, and the Prince, & Claudio, |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.77.2 | Troth no, no more than reason. | Troth no, no more then reason. |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.78 | Why, then my cousin, Margaret, and Ursula | Why then my Cosin Margaret and Vrsula |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.82 | 'Tis no such matter. Then you do not love me? | 'Tis no matter, then you doe not loue me? |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.121 | There is no staff more reverend than one tipped with | there is no staff more reuerend then one tipt with |
| Much Ado About Nothing | MA V.iv.126 | Dance, and then exeunt | Dance. |
| Othello | Oth I.i.24 | More than a spinster – unless the bookish theoric, | More then a Spinster. Vnlesse the Bookish Theoricke: |
| Othello | Oth I.i.30 | Christian and heathen, must be leed and calmed | Christen'd, and Heathen) must be be-leed, and calm'd |
| Othello | Oth I.i.41.1 | I would not follow him then. | I would not follow him then. |
| Othello | Oth I.i.129 | We then have done you bold and saucy wrongs; | We then haue done you bold, and saucie wrongs. |
| Othello | Oth I.ii.61 | Than with your weapons. | then with your Weapons. |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.22 | That as it more concerns the Turk than Rhodes, | That as it more concernes the Turke then Rhodes, |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.43 | 'Tis certain then for Cyprus. | 'Tis certaine then for Cyprus: |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.87 | More than pertains to feats of broil and battle; | More then pertaines to Feats of Broiles, and Battaile, |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.108 | Than these thin habits and poor likelihoods | Then these thin habits, and poore likely-hoods |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.137 | And sold to slavery; of my redemption thence, | And sold to slauery. Of my redemption thence, |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.146 | But still the house affairs would draw her thence, | But still the house Affaires would draw her hence: |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.173.1 | Than their bare hands. | Then their bare hands. |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.189 | I had rather to adopt a child than get it. | I had rather to adopt a Child, then get it. |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.211 | But the free comfort which from thence he hears; | But the free comfort which from thence he heares. |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.287 | Your son-in-law is far more fair than black. | Your Son-in-law is farre more Faire then Blacke. |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.306 | and then we have a prescription to die, when death is | and then haue we a prescription to dye, when death is |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.335 | toughness. I could never better stead thee than | toughnesse. I could neuer better steed thee then |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.349 | delicate way than drowning. Make all the money thou | delicate way then drowning. Make all the Money thou |
| Othello | Oth I.iii.355 | in compassing thy joy than to be drowned and go | in Compassing thy ioy, then to be drown'd, and go |
| Othello | Oth II.i.163 | in the soldier than in the scholar. | in the Souldier, then in the Scholler. |
| Othello | Oth II.i.209 | valiant – as they say base men being in love have then a | Valiant, (as they say base men being in Loue, haue then a |
| Othello | Oth II.i.210 | nobility in their natures more than is native to them – | Nobilitie in their Natures, more then is natiue to them) |
| Othello | Oth II.i.232 | than in putting on the mere form of civil and | then in putting on the meere forme of Ciuill, and |
| Othello | Oth II.i.269 | shall then have to prefer them, and the impediment most | shall then haue to preferre them. And the impediment most |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.68 | Why, then, let a soldier drink. | Why then let a Souldier drinke. |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.91 | Then take thine auld cloak about thee. | And take thy awl'd Cloake about thee. |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.93 | 'Fore God, this is a more exquisite song than the | Why this is a more exquisite Song then the |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.112 | Why, very well; you must not think then that I | Why very well then: you must not thinke then, that I |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.175 | Devesting them for bed; and then but now – | Deuesting them for Bed: and then, but now: |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.213 | Thou dost deliver more or less than truth, | Thou dost deliuer more, or lesse then Truth, |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.216 | Than it should do offence to Michael Cassio. | Then it should do offence to Michaell Cassio. |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.227 | Outran my purpose and I returned the rather | Out-ran my purpose: and I return'd then rather |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.261 | than in reputation. Reputation is an idle and most false | then in Reputation. Reputation is an idle, and most false |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.266 | in his mood – a punishment more in policy than in | in his moode, (a punishment more in policie, then in |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.270 | I will rather sue to be despised than to deceive so | I will rather sue to be despis'd, then to deceiue so |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.312 | goodness not to do more than she is requested. This | goodnesse, not to do more then she is requested. This |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.315 | naming, this crack of your love shall grow stronger than | naming, this cracke of your Loue, shall grow stronger, then |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.326 | And what's he then that says I play the villain, | And what's he then, / That saies I play the Villaine? |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.332 | As the free elements; and then for her | As the free Elements. And then for her |
| Othello | Oth II.iii.338 | With his weak function. How am I then a villain | With his weake Function. How am I then a Villaine, |
| Othello | Oth III.i.19 | Then put up your pipes in your bag, for I'll | Then put vp your Pipes in your bagge, for Ile |
| Othello | Oth III.i.30.2 | You have not been abed then? | You haue not bin a-bed then? |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.13.1 | Than in a politic distance. | Then in a politique distance. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.28 | Than give thy cause away. | Then giue thy cause away. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.58.1 | Tomorrow dinner then? | To morrow Dinner then? |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.60 | Why, then, tomorrow night, or Tuesday morn, | Why then to morrow night, on Tuesday morne, |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.113 | As if thou then hadst shut up in thy brain | As if thou then hadd'st shut vp in thy Braine |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.128 | Why, then, I think Cassio's an honest man. | Why then I thinke Cassio's an honest man. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.147 | Shapes faults that are not – that your wisdom then, | Shapes faults that are not) that your wisedome |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.206.3 | Why, go to, then! | Why go too then: |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.218 | Than to suspicion. | Then to Suspition. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.241 | Sees and knows more, much more than he unfolds. | Sees, and knowes more, much more then he vnfolds. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.269 | Than keep a corner in the thing I love | Then keepe a corner in the thing I loue |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.271 | Prerogatived are they less than the base. | Prerogatiu'd are they lesse then the Base, |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.273 | Even then this forked plague is fated to us | Euen then, this forked plague is Fated to vs, |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.275 | If she be false, O, then heaven mocks itself! | If she be false, Heauen mock'd it selfe: |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.334.1 | Than but to know't a little. | Then but to know't a little. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.360.1 | Than answer my waked wrath! | Then answer my wak'd wrath. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.370.1 | Greater than that. | Greater then that. |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.395 | To bring them to that prospect. Damn them then | To bring them to that Prospect: Damne them then, |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.397 | More than their own! What then? How then? | More then their owne. What then? How then? |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.418 | And then, sir, would he gripe and wring my hand, | And then (Sir) would he gripe, and wring my hand: |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.419 | Cry ‘ O sweet creature!’ and then kiss me hard, | Cry, oh sweet Creature: then kisse me hard, |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.421 | That grew upon my lips; then laid his leg | That grew vpon my lippes, laid his Leg ore my Thigh, |
| Othello | Oth III.iii.422 | Over my thigh, and sighed and kissed, and then | And sigh, and kisse, and then cry cursed Fate, |
| Othello | Oth III.iv.77 | Then would to God that I had never seen it! | Then would to Heauen, that I had neuer seene't? |
| Othello | Oth III.iv.127 | Than for myself I dare. Let that suffice you. | Then for my selfe, I dare. Let that suffice you. |
| Othello | Oth III.iv.134 | Something of moment then. I will go meet him. | Something of moment then: I will go meet him, |
| Othello | Oth III.iv.171 | More tedious than the dial eightscore times! | More tedious then the Diall, eight score times? |
| Othello | Oth IV.i.11 | What then? | What then? |
| Othello | Oth IV.i.12 | Why, then, 'tis hers, my lord, and being hers, | Why then 'tis hers (my Lord) and being hers, |
| Othello | Oth IV.i.31.1 | No more than he'll unswear. | No more then he'le vn-sweare. |
| Othello | Oth IV.i.39 | and then to confess! I tremble at it. Nature would not | and then to confesse: I tremble at it. Nature would not |
| Othello | Oth IV.i.63 | There's many a beast then in a populous city, | Ther's many a Beast then in a populous Citty, |
| Othello | Oth IV.i.191 | O, a thousand, thousand times! – And then of | Oh, a thousand, a thousand times: / And then of |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.1 | You have seen nothing then? | You haue seene nothing then? |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.4 | But then I saw no harm; and then I heard | But then I saw no harme: and then I heard, |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.59 | Or else dries up – to be discarded thence | Or else dries vp: to be discarded thence, |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.87.2 | I cry you mercy then: | I cry you mercy then. |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.177 | all conveniency, than suppliest me with the least advantage | all conueniencie, then suppliest me with the least aduantage |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.205 | this instant do build on thee a better opinion than ever | this instant do build on thee a better opinion then euer |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.213 | reason to believe now than ever – I mean purpose, | reason to beleeue now then euer (I meane purpose, |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.221 | Is that true? Why, then Othello and Desdemona | Is that true? Why then Othello and Desdemona |
| Othello | Oth IV.ii.234 | you will watch his going thence – which I will fashion to | you will watch his going thence (which I will fashion to |
| Othello | Oth IV.iii.10 | How goes it now? He looks gentler than he did. | How goes it now? He lookes gentler then he did. |
| Othello | Oth IV.iii.52 | I called my love false love, but what said he then? | I call'd my Loue false Loue: but what said he then? |
| Othello | Oth IV.iii.101 | Then let them use us well: else let them know | Then let them vse vs well: else let them know, |
| Othello | Oth V.i.25 | But that my coat is better than thou think'st. | But that my Coate is better then thou know'st: |
| Othello | Oth V.i.45 | Nobody come? Then shall I bleed to death. | Nobody come: then shall I bleed to death. |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.4 | Nor scar that whiter skin of hers than snow, | Nor scarre that whiter skin of hers, then Snow, |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.7 | Put out the light, and then put out the light: | Put out the Light, and then put out the Light: |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.33.3 | Then heaven | Then Heauen |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.37 | And yet I fear you: for you're fatal then | And yet I feare you: for you're fatall then |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.57.1 | Then Lord have mercy on me! | O Heauen haue mercy on me. |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.66.2 | He found it then. | He found it then: |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.111 | She comes more nearer earth than she was wont, | She comes more neerer Earth then she was wont, |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.116 | Not Cassio killed! Then murder's out of tune, | Not Cassio kill'd? Then Murther's out of tune, |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.160.1 | Than thou wast worthy her. | Then thou was't worthy her. |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.176 | Than what he found himself was apt and true. | Then what he found himselfe was apt, and true. |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.191 | I thought so then; I'll kill myself for grief. | I thought so then: Ile kill my selfe for greefe. |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.226 | More than indeed belonged to such a trifle – | (More then indeed belong'd to such a Trifle) |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.255 | Look in upon me then, and speak with me, | Looke in vpon me then, and speake with me, |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.262 | Than twenty times your stop. but, O vain boast! – | Then twenty times your stop. But (oh vaine boast) |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.309.3 | Most heathenish and most gross! | Most Heathenish, and most grosse. |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.339 | Nor set down aught in malice. Then must you speak | Nor set downe ought in malice. / Then must you speake, |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.344 | Richer than all his tribe; of one whose subdued eyes, | Richer then all his Tribe: Of one, whose subdu'd Eyes, |
| Othello | Oth V.ii.358 | More fell than anguish, hunger, or the sea, | More fell then Anguish, Hunger, or the Sea: |
| Pericles | Per Chorus.I.17 | This Antioch, then. Antiochus the Great | This Antioch, then Antiochus the great, |
| Pericles | Per I.i.17 | Nothing but curious pleasures, as from thence | Nothing but curious pleasures, as from thence, |
| Pericles | Per I.i.48 | I'll make my will then, and as sick men do | Ile make my Will then, and as sicke men doe, |
| Pericles | Per I.i.57 | Scorning advice, read the conclusion then, | Scorning aduice; read the conclusion then: |
| Pericles | Per I.i.96 | He's more secure to keep it shut than shown, | Hee's more secure to keepe it shut, then showne. |
| Pericles | Per I.i.109 | Then give my tongue like leave to love my head. | Then giue my tongue like leaue, to loue my head. |
| Pericles | Per I.i.120 | And until then your entertain shall be | And vntill then, your entertaine shall bee |
| Pericles | Per I.i.126 | Then were it certain you were not so bad | Then were it certaine you were not so bad, |
| Pericles | Per I.i.136 | Blush not in actions blacker than the night | Blush not in actions blacker then the night, |
| Pericles | Per I.i.142 | Then, lest my life be cropped to keep you clear, | Then least my life be cropt, to keepe you cleare, |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.11 | Then it is thus: the passions of the mind, | Then it is thus, the passions of the mind, |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.47 | I cannot be much lower than my knees. | I cannot be much lower then my knees. |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.50.1 | And then return to us. | And then returne to vs, |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.70 | Attend me then. I went to Antioch, | Attend me then, I went to Antioch, |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.85 | Decrease not, but grow faster than the years. | Decrease not, but grow faster then the yeares, |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.110 | Day serves not light more faithful than I'll be. | day serues not light more faithfull then Ile be. |
| Pericles | Per I.ii.115 | Tyre, I now look from thee then, and to Tarsus | Tyre I now looke from thee then, and to Tharsus |
| Pericles | Per I.iv.18 | I'll then discourse our woes, felt several years, | Ile then discourse our woes felt seuerall yeares, |
| Pericles | Per I.iv.46 | Draw lots who first shall die to lengthen life. | Drawe lots who first shall die, to lengthen life. |
| Pericles | Per Chorus.II.5 | Be quiet then as men should be | Be quiet then, as men should bee, |
| Pericles | Per II.i.65 | than we can do with working. | then we can doe with working. |
| Pericles | Per II.i.66 | Canst thou catch any fishes then? | Canst thou catch any Fishes then? |
| Pericles | Per II.i.68 | Nay then, thou wilt starve, sure, | Nay then thou wilt starue sure: |
| Pericles | Per II.i.74 | And have no more of life than may suffice | And haue no more of life then may suffize, |
| Pericles | Per II.i.88 | But crave? Then I'll turn craver | But craue? Then Ile turne Crauer |
| Pericles | Per II.i.90 | Why, are your beggars whipped then? | Why, are you Beggers whipt then? |
| Pericles | Per II.i.93 | office than to be beadle. But, master, I'll go draw up the | office, then to be Beadle: But Maister, Ile goe draw vp the |
| Pericles | Per II.i.144 | I'll pay your bounties; till then rest your debtor. | Ile pay your bounties; till then, rest your debter. |
| Pericles | Per II.i.166 | Then honour be but a goal to my will, | Then Honour be but a Goale to my Will, |
| Pericles | Per II.ii.47 | He had need mean better than his outward show | He had need meane better, then his outward shew |
| Pericles | Per II.ii.50 | To have practised more the whipstock than the lance. | To haue practis'd more the Whipstocke, then the Launce. |
| Pericles | Per II.iii.5 | Were more than you expect, or more than's fit, | Were more then you expect, or more then's fit, |
| Pericles | Per II.iii.12 | 'Tis more by fortune, lady, than by merit. | Tis more by Fortune (Lady) then my Merit. |
| Pericles | Per II.iii.34 | He has done no more than other knights have done. | ha's done no more / Then other Knights haue done, |
| Pericles | Per II.iv.21 | Follow me then. Lord Helicane, a word. | Follow me then: Lord Hellicane, a word. |
| Pericles | Per II.iv.26 | Wrong not yourself then, noble Helicane, | Wrong not your selfe then, noble Hellican, |
| Pericles | Per II.iv.57 | Then you love us, we you, and we'll clasp hands. | Then you loue vs, we you, & wee'le claspe hands: |
| Pericles | Per II.v.68 | Then, as you are as virtuous as fair, | Then as you are as vertuous, as faire, |
| Pericles | Per II.v.95 | And then, with what haste you can, get you to bed. | And then with what haste you can, get you to bed. |
| Pericles | Per Chorus.III.15.5 | lords kneel to him. Then enter Thaisa with child, with | Lords kneele to him; then enter Thaysa with child, with |
| Pericles | Per III.i.7 | How does my queen? Thou storm, venomously | How does my Queene? then storme venomously, |
| Pericles | Per III.i.35 | Even at the first thy loss is more than can | Euen at the first, thy losse is more then can |
| Pericles | Per III.ii.27 | Than nobleness and riches. Careless heirs | then Noblenesse & Riches; / Carelesse Heyres, |
| Pericles | Per III.ii.39 | Than to be thirsty after tottering honour, | Then to be thirsty after tottering honour, |
| Pericles | Per III.iii.34.1 | Than yours, my lord. | then yours, my Lord. |
| Pericles | Per III.iii.36 | Then give you up to the masked Neptune, and | then giue you vp to the mask'd Neptune, and |
| Pericles | Per IV.i.10 | The fitter then the gods should have her. | The fitter then the Gods should haue her. |
| Pericles | Per IV.i.33 | With more than foreign heart. We every day | with more then forraine heart, wee euery day |
| Pericles | Per IV.ii.7 | but poor three, and they can do no more than they can | but poore three, and they can doe no more then they can |
| Pericles | Per IV.ii.85 | If it please the gods to defend you by men, then | If it please the Gods to defend you by men, then |
| Pericles | Per IV.iii.7 | Much less in blood than virtue, yet a princess | much lesse in bloud then vertue, yet a Princes |
| Pericles | Per IV.iii.28.2 | Be it so, then. | Be it so then, |
| Pericles | Per IV.iv.50 | In her unholy service. Patience then, | In her vnholie seruice: Patience then, |
| Pericles | Per IV.vi.1 | Well, I had rather than twice the worth of her | Well, I had rather then twice the worth of her |
| Pericles | Per IV.vi.36 | less than it gives a good report to a number to be chaste. | lesse then it giues a good report to a number to be chaste. |
| Pericles | Per IV.vi.94 | Diseases have been sold dearer than physic – | diseases haue beene solde deerer then Phisicke, |
| Pericles | Per IV.vi.104 | And the gods strengthen thee. | and the gods strengthen thee. |
| Pericles | Per IV.vi.142 | An if she were a thornier piece of ground than she | And if shee were a thornyer peece of ground then shee |
| Pericles | Per IV.vi.176 | Any of these ways are yet better than this, | anie of these wayes are yet better then this: |
| Pericles | Per V.i.104 | No other than I appear. | no other then I appeare. |
| Pericles | Per V.i.210 | Is it no more to be your daughter than | Is it no more to be your daughter, then |
| Pericles | Per V.ii.2 | More a little, and then dumb. | More a little, and then dum. |
| Pericles | Per V.iii.53.2 | 'Twas Helicanus then. | T'was Hellicanus then. |
| Pericles | Per V.iii.63 | More like a god than you. Will you deliver | more like a god then you, will you deliuer |
| Richard II | R2 I.i.5 | Which then our leisure would not let us hear – | Which then our leysure would not let vs heare, |
| Richard II | R2 I.i.15.1 | Then call them to our presence. | Then call them to our presence |
| Richard II | R2 I.i.74 | As to take up mine honour's pawn, then stoop. | As to take vp mine Honors pawne, then stoope. |
| Richard II | R2 I.i.124 | Then, Bolingbroke, as low as to thy heart | Then Bullingbrooke, as low as to thy heart. |
| Richard II | R2 I.i.184 | Then, dear my liege, mine honour let me try. | Then (deere my Liege) mine Honor let me trie, |
| Richard II | R2 I.ii.2 | Doth more solicit me than your exclaims | Doth more solicite me then your exclaimes, |
| Richard II | R2 I.ii.42 | Where then, alas, may I complain myself? | Where then (alas may I) complaint my selfe? ? |
| Richard II | R2 I.ii.44 | Why then, I will. Farewell, old Gaunt. | Why then I will: farewell old Gaunt. |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.5 | Why then, the champions are prepared, and stay | Why then the Champions, are prepar'd, and stay |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.7.3 | Green. When they are set, enter Mowbray, Duke of | Then Mowbray in Armor, |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.50 | Then let us take a ceremonious leave | Then let vs take a ceremonious leaue |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.91 | More than my dancing soul doth celebrate | More then my dancing soule doth celebrate |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.123.1 | A long flourish. King Richard consults his nobles, then | A long Flourish. |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.162 | Than an unstringed viol or a harp, | Then an vnstringed Vyall, or a Harpe, |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.172 | What is thy sentence then but speechless death, | What is thy sentence then, but speechlesse death, |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.176 | Then thus I turn me from my country's light, | Then thus I turne me from my countries light |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.200 | The clogging burden of a guilty soul. | The clogging burthen of a guilty soule. |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.235 | Why at our justice seemest thou then to lour? | Why at our Iustice seem'st thou then to lowre? |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.303 | Than when he bites, but lanceth not the sore. | Then when it bites, but lanceth not the sore. |
| Richard II | R2 I.iii.306 | Then, England's ground, farewell! Sweet soil, adieu, | Then Englands ground farewell: sweet soil adieu, |
| Richard II | R2 I.iv.7 | Which then blew bitterly against our faces, | Which then grew bitterly against our face, |
| Richard II | R2 I.iv.16 | Marry, would the word ‘ farewell ’ have lengthened hours | Marry, would the word Farwell, haue lengthen'd houres, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.10 | Than they whom youth and ease have taught to glose. | Then they whom youth and ease haue taught to glose, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.11 | More are men's ends marked than their lives before. | More are mens ends markt, then their liues before, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.14 | Writ in remembrance more than things long past. | Writ in remembrance, more then things long past; |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.18 | As praises, of whose taste the wise are fond; | As praises of his state: then there are sound |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.27 | Then all too late comes counsel to be heard | That all too late comes counsell to be heard, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.68 | How happy then were my ensuing death! | How happy then were my ensuing death? |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.95 | Thy deathbed is no lesser than thy land, | Thy death-bed is no lesser then the Land, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.101 | Whose compass is no bigger than thy head, | Whose compasse is no bigger then thy head, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.103 | The waste is no whit lesser than thy land. | The waste is no whit lesser then thy Land: |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.112 | Is it not more than shame to shame it so? | Is it not more then shame, to shame it so? |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.137 | Convey me to my bed, then to my grave. | Conuey me to my bed, then to my graue, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.175 | Than was that young and princely gentleman. | Then was that yong and Princely Gentleman, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.197 | Let not tomorrow then ensue today. | Let not to morrow then insue to day, |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.229 | Ere't be disburdened with a liberal tongue. | Er't be disburthen'd with a liberall tongue. |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.255 | More hath he spent in peace than they in wars. | More hath he spent in peace, then they in warres. |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.260 | His burdenous taxations notwithstanding – | (His burthenous taxations notwithstanding) |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.277 | Then thus: I have from Le Port Blanc, | Then thus: I haue from Port le Blan |
| Richard II | R2 II.i.291 | If then we shall shake off our slavish yoke, | If then we shall shake off our slauish yoake, |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.13 | More than with parting from my lord the King. | More then with parting from my Lord the King. |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.22 | Find shapes of grief more than himself to wail, | Finde shapes of greefe, more then himselfe to waile, |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.24 | Of what it is not. Then, thrice-gracious Queen, | Of what it is not: then thrice-gracious Queene, |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.25 | More than your lord's departure weep not – more is not seen, | More then your Lords departure weep not, more's not seene; |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.45 | Then wherefore dost thou hope he is not shipped? | Then wherefore dost thou hope he is not shipt? |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.124 | Proportionable to the enemy | Proportionable to th'enemy, |
| Richard II | R2 II.ii.132 | If judgement lie in them, then so do we, | If iudgement lye in them, then so do we, |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.16 | Than hope enjoyed. By this the weary lords | Then hope enioy'd: By this, the wearie Lords |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.20 | Than your good words. But who comes here? | Then your good words: but who comes here? |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.35 | Then with directions to repair to Ravenspurgh. | Then with direction to repaire to Rauenspurgh. |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.40 | Then learn to know him now – this is the Duke. | Then learne to know him now: this is the Duke. |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.91 | But then more ‘ why ’ – why have they dared to march | But more then why, why haue they dar'd to march |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.102 | O then how quickly should this arm of mine, | Oh then, how quickly should this Arme of mine, |
| Richard II | R2 II.iii.117 | I see old Gaunt alive. O then, my father, | I see old Gaunt aliue. Oh then my Father, |
| Richard II | R2 III.i.28 | This and much more, much more than twice all this, | This, and much more, much more then twice all this, |
| Richard II | R2 III.i.32 | Than Bolingbroke to England. Lords, farewell. | Then Bullingbrooke to England. |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.39 | Then thieves and robbers range abroad unseen | Then Theeues and Robbers raunge abroad vnseene, |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.44 | Then murders, treasons, and detested sins – | Then Murthers, Treasons, and detested sinnes |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.61 | A glorious angel. Then if angels fight, | A glorious Angell: then if Angels fight, |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.65 | Than this weak arm. Discomfort guides my tongue | Then this weake arme; discomfort guides my tongue, |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.92 | Than can my care-tuned tongue deliver him. | Then can my care-tun'd tongue deliuer him. |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.111 | With hard bright steel, and hearts harder than steel. | With hard bright Steele, and hearts harder then Steele: |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.120 | And all goes worse than I have power to tell. | And all goes worse then I haue power to tell. |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.132 | Three Judases, each one thrice worse than Judas – | Three Iudasses, each one thrice worse then Iudas, |
| Richard II | R2 III.ii.199 | To lengthen out the worst that must be spoken. | To lengthen out the worst, that must be spoken. |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.15 | Mistake not, uncle, further than you should. | Mistake not (Vnckle) farther then you should. |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.16 | Take not, good cousin, further than you should, | Take not (good Cousin) farther then you should. |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.55 | With no less terror than the elements | With no lesse terror then the Elements |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.62.2 | then a flourish. King Richard appeareth on the | then a Flourish. Enter on the |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.113 | Than for his lineal royalties, and to beg | Then for his Lineall Royalties, and to begge |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.137 | As is my grief, or lesser than my name, | As is my Griefe, or lesser then my Name, |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.193 | Than my unpleased eye see your courtesy. | Then my vnpleas'd Eye see your Courtesie. |
| Richard II | R2 III.iii.209.2 | Then I must not say no. | Then I must not say, no. |
| Richard II | R2 III.iv.67 | What, think you then the King shall be deposed? | What thinke you the King shall be depos'd? |
| Richard II | R2 III.iv.78 | Darest thou, thou little better thing than earth, | Dar'st thou, thou little better thing then earth, |
| Richard II | R2 III.iv.91 | I speak no more than everyone doth know. | I speake no more, then euery one doth know. |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.6 | Then set before my face the Lord Aumerle. | Then set before my face, the Lord Aumerle. |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.17 | Than Bolingbroke's return to England, | Then Bullingbrookes returne to England; |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.62 | 'Tis very true. You were in presence then, | My Lord, / 'Tis very true: You were in presence then, |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.119 | Of noble Richard! Then true noblesse would | Of Noble Richard: then true Noblenesse would |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.173 | Am I both priest and clerk? Well then, Amen. | Am I both Priest, and Clarke? well then, Amen. |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.271 | The commons will not then be satisfied. | The Commons will not then be satisfy'd. |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.302 | And then be gone and trouble you no more. | And then be gone, and trouble you no more. |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.304 | ‘ Fair cousin ’? I am greater than a king; | Faire Cousin? I am greater then a King: |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.306 | Were then but subjects; being now a subject | Were then but subiects; being now a subiect, |
| Richard II | R2 IV.i.312 | Then give me leave to go. | Then giue me leaue to goe. |
| Richard II | R2 V.i.58 | More than it is ere foul sin, gathering head, | More then it is, ere foule sinne, gathering head, |
| Richard II | R2 V.i.73 | And then betwixt me and my married wife. | And then betwixt me, and my marryed Wife. |
| Richard II | R2 V.i.85 | Then whither he goes, thither let me go. | Then whither he goes, thither let me goe. |
| Richard II | R2 V.i.88 | Better far off than, near, be ne'er the nea'er. | Better farre off, then neere, be ne're the neere. |
| Richard II | R2 V.ii.7 | Then, as I said, the Duke, great Bolingbroke, | Then, as I said, the Duke, great Bullingbrooke, |
| Richard II | R2 V.ii.19 | Bare-headed, lower than his proud steed's neck | Bare-headed, lower then his proud Steeds necke, |
| Richard II | R2 V.ii.58.2 | No matter, then, who see it. | No matter then who sees it, |
| Richard II | R2 V.ii.83.1 | Than my poor life must answer. | Then my poore life must answer. |
| Richard II | R2 V.ii.100 | We'll keep him here. Then what is that to him? | Wee'l keepe him heere: then what is that to him? |
| Richard II | R2 V.iii.35 | Then give me leave that I may turn the key | Then giue me leaue, that I may turne the key, |
| Richard II | R2 V.iii.108 | Our prayers do outpray his: then let them have | Our prayers do out-pray his, then let them haue |
| Richard II | R2 V.v.15 | And then again, | & then again, |
| Richard II | R2 V.v.33 | Then treasons make me wish myself a beggar; | Then Treason makes me wish my selfe a Beggar, |
| Richard II | R2 V.v.34 | And so I am. Then crushing penury | And so I am. Then crushing penurie, |
| Richard II | R2 V.v.36 | Then am I kinged again; and by and by | Then am I king'd againe: and by and by, |
| Richard II | R2 V.v.93 | And yet I bear a burden like an ass, | And yet I beare a burthen like an Asse, |
| Richard II | R2 V.vi.26 | More than thou hast, and with it joy thy life. | More then thou hast, and with it ioy thy life: |
| Richard III | R3 I.i.112 | Touches me deeper than you can imagine. | Touches me deeper then you can imagine. |
| Richard III | R3 I.i.153 | For then I'll marry Warwick's youngest daughter. | For then, Ile marry Warwickes yongest daughter. |
| Richard III | R3 I.i.162 | When they are gone, then must I count my gains. | When they are gone, then must I count my gaines. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.19 | Than I can wish to wolves – spiders, toads, | Then I can wish to Wolues, to Spiders, Toades, |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.28 | Than I am made by my young lord and thee! | Then I am made by my young Lord, and thee. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.40 | Advance thy halberd higher than my breast, | Aduance thy Halbert higher then my brest, |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.81 | Fairer than tongue can name thee, let me have | Fairer then tongue can name thee, let me haue |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.83 | Fouler than heart can think thee, thou canst make | Fouler then heart can thinke thee, / Thou can'st make |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.89.2 | Then say they were not slain. | Then say they were not slaine: |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.91.2 | Why, then he is alive. | Why then he is aliue. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.102 | Dost grant me, hedgehog? Then God grant me too | Do'st grant me Hedge-hogge, / Then God graunt me too |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.108 | For he was fitter for that place than earth. | For he was fitter for that place then earth. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.141 | He lives, that loves thee better than he could. | He liues, that loues thee better then he could. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.165 | And what these sorrows could not thence exhale, | And what these sorrowes could not thence exhale, |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.186 | Then bid me kill myself, and I will do it. | Then bid me kill my selfe, and I will do it. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.195 | Then never man was true. | Then neuer Man was true. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.197 | Say then my peace is made. | Say then my Peace is made. |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.222.2 | 'Tis more than you deserve; | 'Tis more then you deserue: |
| Richard III | R3 I.ii.261 | And then return lamenting to my love. | And then returne lamenting to my Loue. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.59 | Whom God preserve better than you would wish! – | (Whom God preserue better then you would wish) |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.93 | She may do more, sir, than denying that; | She may do more sir then denying that: |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.95 | And then deny her aiding hand therein | And then deny her ayding hand therein, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.107 | Than a great queen, with this condition, | Then a great Queene, with this condition, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.125 | Yea, and much better blood than his or thine. | I and much better blood / Then his, or thine. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.146 | We followed then our lord, our sovereign king; | We follow'd then our Lord, our Soueraigne King, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.168 | Than death can yield me here by my abode. | Then death can yeeld me here, by my abode. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.176 | And then, to dry them, gav'st the Duke a clout | And then to dry them, gau'st the Duke a Clowt, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.178 | His curses then, from bitterness of soul | His Curses then, from bitternesse of Soule, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.186 | Northumberland, then present, wept to see it. | Northumberland, then present, wept to see it. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.195 | Why then, give way, dull clouds, to my quick curses! | Why then giue way dull Clouds to my quick Curses. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.207 | And after many lengthened hours of grief, | And after many length'ned howres of griefe, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.219 | And then hurl down their indignation | And then hurle downe their indignation |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.234 | I cry thee mercy then; for I did think | I cry thee mercie then: for I did thinke, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iii.333 | But then I sigh, and, with a piece of Scripture, | But then I sigh, and with a peece of Scripture, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.13 | Upon the hatches; thence we looked toward England | Vpon the Hatches: There we look'd toward England, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.43 | No, no, my dream was lengthened after life. | No, no, my Dreame was lengthen'd after life. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.44 | O then began the tempest to my soul! | O then, began the Tempest to my Soule. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.52 | And so he vanished. Then came wandering by | And so he vanish'd. Then came wand'ring by, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.90 | 'Tis better, sir, than to be tedious. | 'Tis better (Sir) then to be tedious: |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.106 | Why, then he'll say we stabbed him | Why then hee'l say, we stab'd him |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.157 | of thy sword, and then throw him into the malmsey-butt | of thy Sword, and then throw him into the Malmesey-Butte |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.200 | That thou shalt do no murder. Will you then | That thou shalt do no murther. Will you then |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.223 | Who made thee then a bloody minister | Who made thee then a bloudy minister, |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.234 | Than Edward will for tidings of my death. | Then Edward will for tydings of my death. |
| Richard III | R3 I.iv.286 | For this will out, and then I must not stay. | For this will out, and then I must not stay. |
| Richard III | R3 II.i.73 | More than the infant that is born tonight. | More then the Infant that is borne to night: |
| Richard III | R3 II.i.95 | Deserve not worse than wretched Clarence did, | Deserue not worse then wretched Clarence did, |
| Richard III | R3 II.i.100 | Then say at once what is it thou requests. | Then say at once, what is it thou requests. |
| Richard III | R3 II.ii.12 | Then you conclude, my grandam, he is dead? | Then you conclude, (my Grandam) he is dead: |
| Richard III | R3 II.ii.141 | Then be it so; and go we to determine | Then be it so, and go we to determine |
| Richard III | R3 II.ii.154 | Toward Ludlow then, for we'll not stay behind. | Toward London then, for wee'l not stay behinde. |
| Richard III | R3 II.iii.9 | Then, masters, look to see a troublous world. | Then Masters looke to see a troublous world. |
| Richard III | R3 II.iii.15 | No doubt shall then, and till then, govern well. | No doubt shall then, and till then gouerne well. |
| Richard III | R3 II.iii.19 | For then this land was famously enriched | For then this Land was famously enrich'd |
| Richard III | R3 II.iii.20 | With politic grave counsel; then the King | With politike graue Counsell; then the King |
| Richard III | R3 II.iii.33 | When great leaves fall, the winter is at hand; | When great leaues fall, then Winter is at hand; |
| Richard III | R3 II.iii.37 | 'Tis more than we deserve or I expect. | 'Tis more then we deserue, or I expect. |
| Richard III | R3 II.iv.12 | More than my brother. ‘ Ay,’ quoth my uncle Gloucester, | More then my Brother. I, quoth my Vnkle Glouster, |
| Richard III | R3 II.iv.25 | To touch his growth nearer than he touched mine. | To touch his growth, neerer then he toucht mine. |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.10 | Than of his outward show, which, God He knows, | Then of his outward shew, which God he knowes, |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.53 | Then, taking him from thence that is not there, | Then taking him from thence, that is not there, |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.66 | Then where you please, and shall be thought most fit | Then where you please, and shall be thought most fit |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.107 | Then he is more beholding to you than I. | Then he is more beholding to you, then I. |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.115 | A greater gift than that I'll give my cousin. | A greater gift then that, Ile giue my Cousin. |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.118 | O, then I see you will part but with light gifts! | O then I see, you will part but with light gifts, |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.167 | What think'st thou then of Stanley? Will not he? | What think'st thou then of Stanley? Will not hee? |
| Richard III | R3 III.i.169 | Well then, no more but this: go, gentle Catesby, | Well then, no more but this: / Goe gentle Catesby, |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.9 | And then? | What then? |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.10 | Then certifies your lordship that this night | Then certifies your Lordship, that this Night |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.92 | Than some that have accused them wear their hats. | Then some that haue accus'd them, weare their Hats. |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.98 | Than when I met thee last where now we meet. | Then when thou met'st me last, where now we meet: |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.99 | Then was I going prisoner to the Tower | Then was I going Prisoner to the Tower, |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.103 | And I in better state than e'er I was. | And I in better state then ere I was. |
| Richard III | R3 III.ii.119 | I shall return before your lordship thence. | I shall returne before your Lordship, thence. |
| Richard III | R3 III.iii.17 | Then cursed she Richard, then cursed she Buckingham, | Then curs'd shee Richard, / Thencurs'd shee Buckingham, |
| Richard III | R3 III.iii.18 | Then cursed she Hastings. O, remember, God, | Then curs'd shee Hastings. Oh remember God, |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.6 | Tomorrow then I judge a happy day. | To morrow then I iudge a happie day. |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.11 | He knows no more of mine than I of yours; | He knowes no more of mine, then I of yours, |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.12 | Or I of his, my lord, than you of mine. | Or I of his, my Lord, then you of mine: |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.29 | Than my Lord Hastings no man might be bolder. | Then my Lord Hastings, no man might be bolder, |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.52 | Can lesser hide his love or hate than he, | Can lesser hide his loue, or hate, then hee, |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.67 | Then be your eyes the witness of their evil. | Then be your eyes the witnesse of their euill. |
| Richard III | R3 III.iv.97 | Which we more hunt for than the grace of God! | Which we more hunt for, then the grace of God! |
| Richard III | R3 III.v.3 | And then again begin, and stop again, | And then againe begin, and stop againe, |
| Richard III | R3 III.v.87 | My princely father, then had wars in France, | My Princely Father, then had Warres in France, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.10 | As being got, your father then in France, | As being got, your Father then in France, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.31 | Then he was urged to tell my tale again: | Then he was vrg'd to tell my Tale againe: |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.43 | Will not the Mayor then and his brethren come? | Will not the Maior then, and his Brethren, come? |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.67 | No less importing than our general good, | No lesse importing then our generall good, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.92 | Are at their beads, 'tis hard to draw them thence, | Are at their Beades, 'tis much to draw them thence, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.116 | Know then it is your fault that you resign | Know then, it is your fault, that you resigne |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.149 | Then, on the other side, I checked my friends. | Then on the other side I check'd my friends. |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.151 | And then, in speaking, not to incur the last – | And then in speaking, not to incurre the last, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.162 | Than in my greatness covet to be hid | Then in my Greatnesse couet to be hid, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.194 | Then, good my lord, take to your royal self | Then good, my Lord, take to your Royall selfe |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.228 | To bear her burden, whe'er I will or no, | To beare her burthen, where I will or no. |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.238 | Then I salute you with this royal title – | Then I salute you with this Royall Title, |
| Richard III | R3 III.vii.243 | Tomorrow then we will attend your grace, | To morrow then we will attend your Grace, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.i.8 | No farther than the Tower, and, as I guess, | No farther then the Tower, and as I guesse, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.i.24 | Then bring me to their sights. I'll bear thy blame | Then bring me to their sights, Ile beare thy blame, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.i.69 | And that dear saint which then I weeping followed – | And that deare Saint, which then I weeping follow'd: |
| Richard III | R3 IV.i.76 | Than thou hast made me by my dear lord's death!’ | Then thou hast made me, by my deare Lords death. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.i.88 | No more than with my soul I mourn for yours. | No more, then with my soule I mourne for yours. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.ii.61 | Murder her brothers, and then marry her – | Murther her Brothers, and then marry her, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.ii.71 | Why, there thou hast it! Two deep enemies, | Why then thou hast it: two deepe enemies, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iii.26 | Beget your happiness, be happy then, | Beget your happinesse, be happy then, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iii.35.1 | Farewell till then. | Farewell till then. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iii.50 | Than Buckingham and his rash-levied strength. | Then Buckingham and his rash leuied Strength. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iii.54 | Then fiery expedition be my wing, | Then fierie expedition be my wing, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.33 | Then would I hide my bones, not rest them here. | Then would I hide my bones, not rest them heere, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.82 | I called thee then vain flourish of my fortune; | I call'd thee then, vaine flourish of my fortune: |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.83 | I called thee then poor shadow, painted queen, | I call'd thee then, poore Shadow, painted Queen, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.111 | Now thy proud neck bears half my burdened yoke, | Now thy proud Necke, beares halfe my burthen'd yoke, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.113 | And leave the burden of it all on thee. | And leaue the burthen of it all, on thee. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.120 | Think that thy babes were sweeter than they were | Thinke that thy Babes were sweeter then they were, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.121 | And he that slew them fouler than he is. | And he that slew them fowler then he is: |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.132 | If so, then be not tongue-tied: go with me, | If so then, be not Tongue-ty'd: go with me, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.157 | Then patiently hear my impatience. | Then patiently heare my impatience. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.160.2 | Do then, but I'll not hear. | Do then, but Ile not heare. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.168 | A grievous burden was thy birth to me; | A greeuous burthen was thy Birth to me, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.190 | Than all the complete armour that thou wearest! | Then all the compleat Armour that thou wear'st. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.239 | Than ever you or yours were by me harmed! | Then euer you and yours by me were harm'd. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.255 | Last longer telling than thy kindness' date. | Last longer telling then thy kindnesse date. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.256 | Then know that from my soul I love thy daughter. | Then know, That from my Soule, I loue thy Daughter. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.265 | Well then, who dost thou mean shall be her king? | Well then, who dost yu meane shallbe her King. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.273 | ‘ Edward ’ and ‘ York ’; then haply she will weep. | Edward and Yorke, then haply will she weepe: |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.289 | Nay, then indeed she cannot choose but hate thee, | Nay then indeed she cannot choose but hate thee |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.300 | Than is the doting title of a mother; | Then is the doting Title of a Mother; |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.325 | Go then, my mother; to thy daughter go; | Go then (my Mother) to thy Daughter go, |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.353 | As long as heaven and nature lengthens it. | As long as Heauen and Nature lengthens it. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.359 | Then plainly to tell her my loving tale. | Then plainly to her, tell my louing tale. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.373 | Swear then by something that thou hast not wronged. | Sweare then by something, that thou hast not wrong'd. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.374.1 | Then by myself – | Then by my Selfe. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.377.1 | Why then, by God – | Why then, by Heauen. |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.473 | Then tell me, what makes he upon the seas? | Then tell me, what makes he vpon the Seas? |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.479 | Where is thy power then to beat him back? | Where is thy Power then, to beat him back? |
| Richard III | R3 IV.iv.494 | Go then, and muster men. But leave behind | Goe then, and muster men: but leaue behind |
| Richard III | R3 V.i.12 | Why, then All Souls' Day is my body's doomsday. | Why then Al-soules day, is my bodies doomsday |
| Richard III | R3 V.ii.22 | All for our vantage. Then in God's name march! | All for our vantage, then in Gods name march, |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.3 | My heart is ten times lighter than my looks. | My heart is ten times lighter then my lookes. |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.50 | What, is my beaver easier than it was? | What, is my Beauer easier then it was? |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.186 | Then fly. What, from myself? Great reason why – | Then flye; What from my Selfe? Great reason: why? |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.219 | Than can the substance of ten thousand soldiers | Then can the substance of ten thousand Souldiers |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.237 | Why, then 'tis time to arm and give direction. | Why then 'tis time to Arme, and giue direction. |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.238 | More than I have said, loving countrymen, | More then I haue said, louing Countrymen, |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.245 | Had rather have us win than him they follow. | Had rather haue vs win, then him they follow. |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.254 | Then if you fight against God's enemy, | Then if you fight against Gods Enemy, |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.264 | Then in the name of God and all these rights, | Then in the name of God and all these rights, |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.274 | He said the truth. And what said Surrey then? | He said the truth: and what said Surrey then? |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.279 | Then he disdains to shine; for by the book | Then he disdaines to shine: for by the Booke |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.287 | More than to Richmond? For the selfsame heaven | More then to Richmond? For the selfe-same Heauen |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.314 | If not to heaven, then hand in hand to hell. | If not to heauen, then hand in hand to Hell. |
| Richard III | R3 V.iii.315 | What shall I say more than I have inferred? | What shall I say more then I haue inferr'd? |
| Richard III | R3 V.iv.2 | The King enacts more wonders than a man, | The King enacts more wonders then a man, |
| Richard III | R3 V.v.18 | And then, as we have ta'en the sacrament, | And then as we haue tane the Sacrament, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.2 | No. For then we should be colliers. | No, for then we should be Colliars. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.127 | Which then most sought where most might not be found, | Which then most sought, wher most might not be found: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.163 | It was. What sadness lengthens Romeo's hours? | It was: what sadnes lengthens Romeo's houres? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.176 | Why then, O brawling love, O loving hate, | Why then, O brawling loue, O louing hate, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.i.217 | Then she hath sworn that she will still live chaste? | Then she hath sworne, that she will still liue chast? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.12 | Younger than she are happy mothers made. | Younger then she, are happy mothers made. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.54 | Not mad, but bound more than a madman is; | Not mad, but bound more then a mad man is: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.88 | Maintains such falsehood, then turn tears to fires; | Maintaines such falshood, then turne teares to fire: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.ii.91 | One fairer than my love? The all-seeing sun | One fairer then my loue: the all-seeing Sun |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.27 | For I had then laid wormwood to my dug, | for I had then laid Worme-wood to my Dug |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.29 | My lord and you were then at Mantua. | my Lord and you were then at Mantua, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.37 | For then she could stand high-lone. Nay, by th' rood, | for then she could stand alone, nay bi'th' roode |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.40 | And then my husband – God be with his soul! | & then my Husband God be with his soule, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.70 | Well, think of marriage now. Younger than you, | Well thinke of marriage now, yonger then you |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.74 | That you are now a maid. Thus then in brief: | That you are now a Maide, thus then in briefe: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iii.100 | Than your consent gives strength to make it fly. | Then your consent giues strength to make flye. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.22 | Under love's heavy burden do I sink. | Vnder loues heauy burthen doe I sinke. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.23 | And, to sink in it, should you burden love – | And to sinke in it should you burthen loue, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.53 | O, then I see Queen Mab hath been with you. | O then I see Queene Mab hath beene with you: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.55 | In shape no bigger than an agate stone | in shape no bigger then Agat-stone, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.71 | Through lovers' brains, and then they dream of love; | through Louers braines: and then they dreame of Loue. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.78 | And then dreams he of smelling out a suit. | & then dreames he of smelling out a sute: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.81 | Then he dreams of another benefice. | then he dreames of another Benefice. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.83 | And then dreams he of cutting foreign throats, | & then dreames he of cutting Forraine throats, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.85 | Of healths five fathom deep; and then anon | Of Healths fiue Fadome deepe, and then anon |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.100 | And more inconstant than the wind, who woos | And more inconstant then the wind, who wooes |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.iv.102 | And, being angered, puffs away from thence, | And being anger'd, puffes away from thence, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.38 | Some five-and-twenty years; and then we masked. | Some fiue and twenty yeares, and then we Maskt. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.103 | O, then, dear saint, let lips do what hands do! | O then deare Saint, let lips do what hands do, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.106 | Then move not while my prayer's effect I take. | Then moue not while my prayers effect I take: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.108 | Then have my lips the sin that they have took. | Then haue my lips the sin that they haue tooke. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.123 | Is it e'en so? Why then, I thank you all. | Is it e'ne so? why then I thanke you all. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ I.v.125 | More torches here! Come on then, let's to bed. | More Torches here: come on, then let's to bed. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.i.41.2 | Go then, for 'tis in vain | Go then, for 'tis in vaine |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.6 | That thou her maid art far more fair than she. | That thou her Maid art far more faire then she: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.72 | Than twenty of their swords! Look thou but sweet, | Then twenty of their Swords, looke thou but sweete, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.78 | Than death prorogued, wanting of thy love. | Then death proroged wanting of thy Loue. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.101 | Than those that have more cunning to be strange. | Then those that haue coying to be strange, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.162 | And make her airy tongue more hoarse than mine | And make her ayrie tongue more hoarse, then |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.169 | I will not fail. 'Tis twenty years till then. | I will not faile, 'tis twenty yeares till then, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.ii.177 | And yet no farther than a wanton's bird, | And yet no further then a wantons Bird, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.37 | Or if not so, then here I hit it right –, | Or if not so, then here I hit it right. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.43 | That's my good son! But where hast thou been then? | That's my good Son, but wher hast thou bin then? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.53 | Then plainly know my heart's dear love is set | Then plainly know my hearts deare Loue is set, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.63 | So soon forsaken? Young men's love then lies | So soone forsaken? young mens Loue then lies |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iii.75 | And art thou changed? Pronounce this sentence then: | And art thou chang'd? pronounce this sentence then, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.19 | More than Prince of Cats, I can tell you. O, | More then Prince of Cats. Oh |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.59 | Why, then is my pump well-flowered. | Why then is my Pump well flowr'd. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.72 | thy wits than, I am sure, I have in my whole five. Was I | thy wits, then I am sure I haue in my whole fiue. Was I |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.80 | And is it not, then, well served in to a sweet | And is it not well seru'd into a Sweet- |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.86 | Why, is not this better now than groaning for | Why is not this better now, then groning for |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.118 | when you have found him than he was when you sought | when you haue found him, then he was when you sought |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.145 | talk and will speak more in a minute than he will stand | talke, and will speake more in a minute, then he will stand |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.iv.148 | down, an 'a were lustier than he is, and twenty such | downe, & a were lustier then he is, and twentie such |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.5 | Which ten times faster glides than the sun's beams, | Which ten times faster glides then the Sunnes beames, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.34 | Is longer than the tale thou dost excuse. | Is longer then the tale thou dost excuse. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.40 | his face be better than any man's, yet his leg excels all | his face be better then any mans, yet his legs excels all |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.68 | Then hie you hence to Friar Laurence' cell. | Then high you hence to Frier Lawrence Cell, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.v.76 | But you shall bear the burden soon at night. | But you shall beare the burthen soone at night. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.vi.7 | Then love-devouring death do what he dare – | Then Loue-deuouring death do what he dare, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.vi.26 | To blazon it, then sweeten with thy breath | To blason it, then sweeten with thy breath |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ II.vi.30 | Conceit, more rich in matter than in words, | Conceit more rich in matter then in words, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.18 | hair less in his beard than thou hast. Thou wilt quarrel | haire lesse in his beard, then thou hast: thou wilt quarrell |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.60 | No better term than this: thou art a villain. | No better terme then this: Thou art a Villaine. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.68 | But love thee better than thou canst devise | But lou'd thee better then thou can'st deuise: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.165 | ‘ Hold, friends! Friends, part!’ and swifter than his tongue | Hold Friends, Friends part, and swifter then his tongue, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.i.169 | Of stout Mercutio, and then Tybalt fled. | Of stout Mercutio, and then Tybalt fled. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.19 | Whiter than new snow upon a raven's back. | Whiter then new Snow vpon a Rauens backe: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.47 | Than the death-darting eye of cockatrice. | Then the death-darting eye of Cockatrice, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.67 | Then, dreadful trumpet, sound the General Doom! | Then dreadfull Trumpet sound the generall doome, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.107 | All this is comfort. Wherefore weep I then? | All this is comfort, wherefore weepe I then? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.ii.108 | Some word there was, worser than Tybalt's death, | Some words there was worser then Tybalts death |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.9 | What less than doomsday is the Prince's doom? | What lesse then Doomesday, / Is the Princes Doome? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.14 | Much more than death. Do not say ‘ banishment.’ | Much more then death: do not say banishment. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.20 | And world's exile is death. Then ‘ banished ’ | And worlds exile is death. Then banished, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.35 | In carrion flies than Romeo. They may seize | In carrion Flies, then Romeo: they may seaze |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.53 | Thou fond mad man, hear me a little speak. | Then fond Mad man, heare me speake. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.62 | O, then I see that madmen have no ears. | O then I see, that Mad men haue no eares. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.69 | Then mightst thou speak; then mightst thou tear thy hair, | Then mightest thou speake, / Then mightest thou teare thy hayre, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.81.2 | Welcome then. | Welcome then. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.100 | And now falls on her bed, and then starts up, | And now fals on her bed, and then starts vp, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.101 | And Tybalt calls, and then on Romeo cries, | And Tybalt calls, and then on Romeo cries, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.102.1 | And then down falls again. | And then downe falls againe. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.149 | For then thou canst not pass to Mantua, | For then thou canst not passe to Mantua, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iii.154 | Than thou wentest forth in lamentation. | Then thou went'st forth in lamentation. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.iv.30 | Well, get you gone. A' Thursday be it, then. | Well, get you gone, a Thursday, be it then: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.23 | I have more care to stay than will to go. | I haue more care to stay, then will to go: |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.41 | Then, window, let day in, and let life out. | Then window let day in, and let life out. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.63 | For then I hope thou wilt not keep him long | For then I hope thou wilt not keepe him long, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.88 | Then weep no more. I'll send to one in Mantua, | Then weepe no more, Ile send to one in Mantua, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.92 | And then I hope thou wilt be satisfied. | And then I hope thou wilt be satisfied. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.123 | Rather than Paris. These are news indeed! | Rather then Paris. These are newes indeed. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.184 | And then to have a wretched puling fool, | And then to haue a wretched puling foole, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ III.v.217 | Then, since the case so stands as now it doth, | Then since the case so stands as now it doth, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.28 | Being spoke behind your back, than to your face. | Benig spoke behind your backe, then to your face. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.32 | Thou wrongest it more than tears with that report. | Thou wrong'st it more then teares with that report. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.43 | Till then, adieu, and keep this holy kiss. | Till then adue, and keepe this holy kisse. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.71 | If, rather than to marry County Paris, | If rather then to marrie Countie Paris |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.73 | Then is it likely thou wilt undertake | Then is it likely thou wilt vndertake |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.77 | O bid me leap, rather than marry Paris, | Oh bid me leape, rather then marrie Paris, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.89 | Hold, then. Go home, be merry, give consent | Hold then: goe home, be merrie, giue consent, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.93 | Take thou this vial, being then in bed, | Take thou this Violl being then in bed, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.106 | And then awake as from a pleasant sleep. | And then awake, as from a pleasant sleepe. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.i.109 | Then, as the manner of our country is, | Then as the manner of our country is, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.iii.22 | Shall I be married then tomorrow morning? | Shall I be married then to morrow morning? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.iii.33 | Shall I not then be stifled in the vault, | Shall I not then be stifled in the Vault? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.108 | You will not then? | You will not then? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.110 | I will then give it you soundly. | I will then giue it you soundly. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.114 | Then I will give you the | Then will I giue you the |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.116 | Then will I lay the serving-creature's dagger on | Then will I lay the seruing Creatures Dagger on |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.122 | Then have at you with my wit! I will dry-beat you | Then haue at you with my wit. / I will drie-beate you |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.127 | Then music with her silver sound ’ – | then Musicke with her siluer sound. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ IV.v.140 | ‘ Then music with her silver sound | Then Musicke with her siluer sound, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.17 | Then she is well, and nothing can be ill. | Then she is well, and nothing can be ill. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.24 | Is it e'en so? Then I defy you, stars! | Is it euen so? / Then I denie you Starres. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.46 | Green earthen pots, bladders, and musty seeds, | Greene earthen pots, Bladders, and mustie seedes, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.74 | Then be not poor, but break it and take this. | Then be not poore, but breake it, and take this. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.i.82 | Than these poor compounds that thou mayst not sell. | Then these poore compounds that thou maiest not sell. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.ii.13 | Who bare my letter, then, to Romeo? | Who bare my Letter then to Romeo? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.7 | But thou shalt hear it. Whistle then to me, | But thou shalt heare it: whistle then to me, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.30 | But chiefly to take thence from her dead finger | But chiefly to take thence from her dead finger, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.39 | Than empty tigers or the roaring sea. | Then emptie Tygers, or the roaring Sea. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.55 | Can vengeance be pursued further than death? | Can vengeance be pursued further then death? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.64 | By heaven, I love thee better than myself, | By heauen I loue thee better then my selfe, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.70 | Wilt thou provoke me? Then have at thee, boy! | Wilt thou prouoke me? Then haue at thee Boy. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.99 | Than with that hand that cut thy youth in twain | Then with that hand that cut thy youth in twaine, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.135 | Stay then; I'll go alone. Fear comes upon me. | Stay, then Ile go alone, feares comes vpon me. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.153 | A greater power than we can contradict | A greater power then we can contradict |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.169 | Yea, noise? Then I'll be brief. O happy dagger! | Yea noise? Then ile be briefe. O happy Dagger. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.219 | And then will I be general of your woes | And then will I be generall of your woes, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.228 | Then say at once what thou dost know in this. | Then say at once, what thou dost know in this? |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.239 | To County Paris. Then comes she to me | To Countie Paris. Then comes she to me, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.243 | Then gave I her – so tutored by my art – | Then gaue I her (so Tutor'd by my Art) |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.252 | Returned my letter back. Then all alone | Return'd my Letter backe. Then all alone, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.262 | But then a noise did scare me from the tomb, | But then, a noyse did scarre me from the Tombe, |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.273 | And then in post he came from Mantua | And then in poste he came from Mantua |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.285 | And then I ran away to call the Watch. | And then I ran away to call the Watch. |
| Romeo and Juliet | RJ V.iii.310 | Than this of Juliet and her Romeo. | Then this of Iuliet, and her Romeo. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.39 | Would not the beggar then forget himself? | Would not the begger then forget himselfe? |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.43 | Then take him up, and manage well the jest. | Then take him vp, and manage well the iest: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.69 | He is no less than what we say he is. | He is no lesse then what we say he is. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.116 | And then with kind embracements, tempting kisses, | And then with kinde embracements, tempting kisses, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.1.121 | No better than a poor and loathsome beggar. | No better then a poore and loathsome begger: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.8 | what raiment I'll wear, for I have no more doublets than | what raiment Ile weare, for I haue no more doublets then |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.9 | backs, no more stockings than legs, nor no more shoes | backes: no more stockings then legges: nor no more shooes |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.10 | than feet – nay, sometimes more feet than shoes, or such | then feet, nay sometime more feete then shooes, or such |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.37 | Softer and sweeter than the lustful bed | Softer and sweeter then the lustfull bed |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.47 | As breathed stags, ay, fleeter than the roe. | As breathed Stags: I fleeter then the Roe. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.62 | Than any woman in this waning age. | Then any woman in this waining age. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS induction.2.134 | Which bars a thousand harms and lengthens life. | Which barres a thousand harmes, and lengthens life. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.136 | his youngest free for a husband, and then have to't | his yongest free for a husband, and then haue too t |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.174 | Nay, then 'tis time to stir him from his trance. | Nay, then 'tis time to stirre him frõ his trance: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.198 | For man or master. Then it follows thus – | For man or master: then it followes thus; |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.i.240 | When I am alone, why then I am Tranio, | When I am alone, why then I am Tranio: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.14 | And then I know after who comes by the worst. | And then I know after who comes by the worst. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.35 | Then had not Grumio come by the worst. | then had not Grumio come by the worst. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.50 | To seek their fortunes farther than at home, | To seeke their fortunes farther then at home, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.58 | Petruchio, shall I then come roundly to thee | Petruchio, shall I then come roundly to thee, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.67 | As wealth is burden of my wooing dance – | (As wealth is burthen of my woing dance) |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.75 | If wealthily, then happily in Padua. | If wealthily, then happily in Padua. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.90 | That, were my state far worser than it is, | That were my state farre worser then it is, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.113 | it that she shall have no more eyes to see withal than a | it, that shee shal haue no more eies to see withall then a |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.150 | For she is sweeter than perfume itself | For she is sweeter then perfume it selfe |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.156 | Than you, unless you were a scholar, sir. | Then you; vnlesse you were a scholler sir. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.239 | And were his daughter fairer than she is, | And were his daughter fairer then she is, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.242 | Then well one more may fair Bianca have. | Then well one more may faire Bianca haue; |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.255 | And let it be more than Alcides' twelve. | And let it be more then Alcides twelue. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS I.ii.261 | The younger then is free, and not before. | The yonger then is free, and not before. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.12 | Which I could fancy more than any other. | Which I could fancie, more then any other. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.16 | O then, belike, you fancy riches more. | Oh then belike you fancie riches more, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.19 | Nay then you jest, and now I well perceive | Nay then you iest, and now I wel perceiue |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.22 | If that be jest, then all the rest was so. | If that be iest, then all the rest was so. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.78 | been more kindly beholding to you than any, freely give | beene / More kindely beholding to you then any: / Freely giue |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.101 | If you accept them, then their worth is great. | If you accept them, then their worth is great: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.112 | And then to dinner. You are passing welcome, | And then to dinner: you are passing welcome, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.118 | Which I have bettered rather than decreased. | Which I haue bettered rather then decreast, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.119 | Then tell me, if I get your daughter's love, | Then tell me, if I get your daughters loue, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.147 | Why then, thou canst not break her to the lute? | Why then thou canst not break her to the Lute? |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.161 | I love her ten times more than e'er I did. | I loue her ten times more then ere I did, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.170 | Say that she rail, why then I'll tell her plain | Say that she raile, why then Ile tell her plaine, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.175 | Then I'll commend her volubility, | Then Ile commend her volubility, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.202 | Alas, good Kate, I will not burden thee! | Alas good Kate, I will not burthen thee, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.211 | My remedy is then to pluck it out. | My remedy is then to plucke it out. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.221 | And if no gentleman, why then no arms. | And if no Gentleman, why then no armes. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.230.1 | Then show it me. | Then shew it me. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.249 | As hazel-nuts and sweeter than the kernels. | As hazle nuts, and sweeter then the kernels: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.255 | And then let Kate be chaste and Dian sportful. | And then let Kate be chaste, and Dian sportfull. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.294 | Is this your speeding? Nay then, good night our part. | Is this your speeding? nay thẽ godnight our part. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.329 | Than words can witness or your thoughts can guess. | Then words can witnesse, or your thoughts can guesse. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.349 | To house or housekeeping. Then at my farm | To house or house-keeping: then at my farme |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.371 | Than three great argosies, besides two galliasses | Then three great Argosies, besides two Galliasses |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.375 | And she can have no more than all I have. | And she can haue no more then all I haue, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS II.i.377 | Why, then the maid is mine from all the world | Why then the maid is mine from all the world |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.6 | Then give me leave to have prerogative, | Then giue me leaue to haue prerogatiue, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.13 | Then give me leave to read philosophy, | Then giue me leaue to read Philosophy, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.67 | Than hath been taught by any of my trade. | Then hath beene taught by any of my trade, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.i.84 | Faith, mistress, then I have no cause to stay. | Faith Mistresse then I haue no cause to stay. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.37 | What then? | What then? |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.82 | Is more than one, | is more then one, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.134 | Of greater sums than I have promised. | Of greater summes then I haue promised, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.153 | Curster than she? Why, 'tis impossible. | Curster then she, why 'tis impossible. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.179 | And I seeing this came thence for very shame, | and I seeing this, came thence for very shame, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.191 | You would entreat me rather go than stay. | You would intreat me rather goe then stay: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS III.ii.206 | Nay then, | Nay then, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.i.9 | the weather, a taller man than I will take cold. | the weather, a taller man then I will take cold: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.i.161 | Than feed it with such overroasted flesh. | Then feede it with such ouer-rosted flesh: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.i.178 | For then she never looks upon her lure. | For then she neuer lookes vpon her lure. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.49.2 | Then we are rid of Licio. | Then we are rid of Lisio. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.71 | Take in your love, and then let me alone. | Take me your loue, and then let me alone. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.75 | But then up farther, and as far as Rome, | But then vp farther, and as farre as Rome, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.88 | Alas, sir, it is worse for me than so! | Alas sir, it is worse for me then so, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.ii.115 | Then go with me to make the matter good. | Then go with me, to make the matter good, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.11 | And that which spites me more than all these wants, | And that which spights me more then all these wants, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.26 | Why then, the beef, and let the mustard rest. | Why then the Beefe, and let the Mustard rest. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.27 | Nay then, I will not. You shall have the mustard, | Nay then I wil not, you shal haue the Mustard |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.29 | Then both, or one, or anything thou wilt. | Then both or one, or any thing thou wilt. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.30 | Why then, the mustard without the beef. | Why then the Mustard without the beefe. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.42 | What, not a word? Nay, then, thou lov'st it not, | What, not a word? Nay then, thou lou'st it not: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.72.1 | And not till then. | And not till then. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.79 | And rather than it shall, I will be free | And rather then it shall, I will be free, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.149 | God-a-mercy, Grumio, then he shall have no | God-a-mercie Grumio, then hee shall haue no |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.157 | O sir, the conceit is deeper than you think for. | Oh sir, the conceit is deeper then you think for: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.171 | What, is the jay more precious than the lark | What is the Iay more precious then the Larke? |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iii.173 | Or is the adder better than the eel | Or is the Adder better then the Eele, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.33 | No worse than I, upon some agreement | No worse then I, vpon some agreement |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.43 | And therefore if you say no more than this, | And therefore if you say no more then this, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.48 | I thank you, sir. Where then do you know best | I thanke you sir, where then doe you know best |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.55 | Then at my lodging, an it like you. | Then at my lodging, and it like you, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.79 | Then thus – Baptista is safe, talking with the | Then thus: Baptista is safe talking with the |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.84 | And then? | And then. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.iv.102 | She will be pleased, then wherefore should I doubt? | She will be pleas'd, then wherefore should I doubt: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.v.17 | Nay, then you lie. It is the blessed sun. | Nay then you lye: it is the blessed Sunne. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.v.18 | Then, God be blessed, it is the blessed sun. | Then God be blest, it in the blessed sun, |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS IV.v.79 | Then hast thou taught Hortensio to be untoward. | Then hast thou taught Hortentio to be vntoward. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.5 | and then come back to my master's as soon as I can. | and then come backe to my mistris as soone as I can. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.94 | Then thou wert best say that I am not Lucentio. | Then thou wert best saie that I am not Lucentio. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.118 | Then pardon him, sweet father, for my sake. | Then pardon him sweete Father for my sake. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.136 | Why, then, let's home again. | Why then let's home againe: |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.i.141 | Better once than never, for never too late. | Better once then neuer, for neuer to late. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.17 | Then never trust me if I be afeard. | Then neuer trust me if I be affeard. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.47 | And then pursue me as you draw your bow. | And then pursue me as you draw your Bow. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.74.1 | A hundred then. | A hundred then. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.87.1 | Nay, then she must needs come. | nay then shee must needes come. |
| The Taming of the Shrew | TS V.ii.175 | Then vail your stomachs, for it is no boot, | Then vale your stomackes, for it is no boote, |
| The Tempest | Tem I.i.20 | None that I more love than myself. You are | None that I more loue then my selfe. You are |
| The Tempest | Tem I.i.36 | A plague upon this howling! They are louder than the | A plague --- vpon this howling: they are lowder then the |
| The Tempest | Tem I.i.42 | Work you, then. | Worke you then. |
| The Tempest | Tem I.i.44 | We are less afraid to be drowned than thou art. | we are lesse afraid to be drownde, then thou art. |
| The Tempest | Tem I.i.46 | were no stronger than a nutshell and as leaky as an | were no stronger then a Nutt-shell, and as leaky as an |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.20 | Than Prospero, master of a full poor cell, | Then Prospero, Master of a full poore cell, |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.40 | I do not think thou canst, for then thou wast not | I doe not thinke thou canst, for then thou was't not |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.45 | And rather like a dream than an assurance | And rather like a dreame, then an assurance |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.60 | What foul play had we, that we came from thence? | What fowle play had we, that we came from thence? |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.62 | By foul play, as thou sayst, were we heaved thence, | By fowle-play (as thou saist) were we heau'd thence, |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.117 | Mark his condition and th' event; then tell me | Marke his condition, and th' euent, then tell me |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.131 | The ministers for th' purpose hurried thence | The ministers for th' purpose hurried thence |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.133 | I, not remembering how I cried out then, | I not remembring how I cride out then |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.136 | And then I'll bring thee to the present business | And then I'le bring thee to the present businesse |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.152.1 | Was I then to you! | Was I then to you? |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.156 | Under my burden groaned, which raised in me | Vnder my burthen groan'd, which rais'd in me |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.162 | Out of his charity, who being then appointed | Out of his Charity, (who being then appointed |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.173 | Than other princess can, that have more time | Then other Princesse can, that haue more time |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.201 | Then meet and join. Jove's lightnings, the precursors | Then meete, and ioyne. Ioues Lightning, the precursers |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.212 | Then all afire with me. The King's son Ferdinand, | Then all a fire with me the Kings sonne Ferdinand |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.213 | With hair upstaring – then like reeds, not hair – | With haire vp-staring (then like reeds, not haire) |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.219 | But fresher than before; and as thou bad'st me, | But fresher then before: and as thou badst me, |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.271 | As thou report'st thyself, wast then her servant. | As thou reportst thy selfe, was then her seruant, |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.281 | As fast as millwheels strike. Then was this island – | As fast as Mill-wheeles strike: Then was this Island |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.330.1 | Than bees that made 'em. | Then Bees that made 'em. |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.336 | That burn by day and night. And then I loved thee, | That burne by day, and night: and then I lou'd thee |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.362 | Deserved more than a prison. | Deseru'd more then a prison. |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.376 | And then take hands. | and then take hands: |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.380 | And, sweet sprites, the burden bear. | and sweete Sprights beare the burthen. |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.382 | (Burden, dispersedly) Bow-wow! | Burthen dispersedly. bowgh wawgh: |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.394 | With its sweet air. Thence I have followed it, | With it's sweet ayre: thence I haue follow'd it |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.404 | (Burden) Ding-dong. | Burthen: ding dong. |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.483 | Are then most humble. I have no ambition | Are then most humble: I haue no ambition |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.498 | Than he appears by speech. This is unwonted | Then he appeares by speech: this is vnwonted |
| The Tempest | Tem I.ii.500 | As mountain winds; but then exactly do | As mountaine windes; but then exactly do |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.8 | Can speak like us. Then wisely, good sir, weigh | Can speake like vs: then wisely (good Sir) weigh |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.22 | truer than you purposed. | truer then you purpos'd. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.23 | You have taken it wiselier than I meant you | You haue taken it wiselier then I meant you |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.66 | freshness and glosses, being rather new-dyed than | freshnesse and glosses, being rather new dy'de then |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.88 | His word is more than the miraculous harp. | His word is more then the miraculous Harpe. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.110 | Married my daughter there! For, coming thence, | Married my daughter there: For comming thence |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.136 | Than we bring men to comfort them. | Then we bring men to comfort them: |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.188 | We would so, and then go a-bat-fowling. | We would so, and then go a Bat-fowling. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.204 | Doth it not then our eyelids sink? I find | Doth it not then our eye-lids sinke? I finde |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.223 | I am more serious than my custom. You | I am more serious then my custome: you |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.248.3 | Then, tell me, | Then tell me, |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.267 | Than now they are. There be that can rule Naples | Then now they are: There be that can rule Naples |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.278 | Much feater than before. My brother's servants | Much feater then before: My Brothers seruants |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.279 | Were then my fellows. Now they are my men. | Were then my fellowes, now they are my men. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.286 | No better than the earth he lies upon, | No better then the earth he lies vpon, |
| The Tempest | Tem II.i.311.1 | Then let us both be sudden. | Then let vs both be sodaine. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.1.1 | Enter Caliban with a burden of wood. A noise of | Enter Caliban, with a burthen of Wood (a noyse of |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.10 | And after bite me; then like hedgehogs, which | And after bite me: then like Hedg-hogs, which |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.26 | fishlike smell; a kind of not-of-the-newest poor-John. | fish-like smell: a kinde of, not of the newest poore-Iohn: |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.45.1 | He drinks and then sings | Drinkes. Sings. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.53 | Then to sea, boys, and let her go hang! | Then to Sea Boyes, and let her goe hang. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.124 | Here! Swear, then, how thou escaped'st. | Heere: sweare then how thou escap'dst. |
| The Tempest | Tem II.ii.150 | Come on then. Down, and swear! | Come on then: downe and sweare. |
| The Tempest | Tem III.i.8 | Ten times more gentle than her father's crabbed, | Ten times more gentle, then her Father's crabbed; |
| The Tempest | Tem III.i.27 | Than you should such dishonour undergo, | Then you should such dishonor vndergoe, |
| The Tempest | Tem III.i.51 | More that I may call men than you, good friend, | More that I may call men, then you good friend, |
| The Tempest | Tem III.i.62 | This wooden slavery than to suffer | This wodden slauerie, then to suffer |
| The Tempest | Tem III.i.87.2 | My husband, then? | My husband then? |
| The Tempest | Tem III.ii.51 | Mum, then, and no more. Proceed! | Mum then, and no more: proceed. |
| The Tempest | Tem III.ii.115.1 | Wilt thou destroy him then? | Wilt thou destroy him then? |
| The Tempest | Tem III.ii.140 | That, if I then had waked after long sleep, | That if I then had wak'd after long sleepe, |
| The Tempest | Tem III.ii.141 | Will make me sleep again; and then, in dreaming, | Will make me sleepe againe, and then in dreaming, |
| The Tempest | Tem III.iii.33 | Their manners are more gentle, kind, than of | Their manners are more gentle, kinde, then of |
| The Tempest | Tem III.iii.37.1 | Are worse than devils. | Are worse then diuels. |
| The Tempest | Tem III.iii.78 | Lingering perdition – worse than any death | Lingring perdition (worse then any death |
| The Tempest | Tem III.iii.84.1 | He vanishes in thunder. Then, to soft music, enter the | He vanishes in Thunder: then (to soft Musicke.) Enter the |
| The Tempest | Tem III.iii.103 | I'll seek him deeper than e'er plummet sounded, | I'le seeke him deeper then ere plummet sounded, |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.13 | Then, as my gift, and thine own acquisition | Then, as my guest, and thine owne acquisition |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.32 | Sit then and talk with her: she is thine own. | Sit then, and talke with her, she is thine owne; |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.58 | Rather than want a spirit. Appear, and pertly. | Rather then want a Spirit; appear, & pertly. |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.113 | Plants with goodly burden bowing; | Plants, with goodly burthen bowing: |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.175 | Towards their project. Then I beat my tabor, | Towards their proiect: then I beate my Tabor, |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.197 | fairy, has done little better than played the Jack | Fairy, / Has done little better then plaid the Iacke |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.211 | That's more to me than my wetting. Yet this | That's more to me then my wetting: / Yet this |
| The Tempest | Tem IV.i.262.1 | Than pard or cat o' mountain. | Then Pard, or Cat o' Mountaine. |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.24 | Passion as they, be kindlier moved than thou art? | Passion as they, be kindlier mou'd then thou art? |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.28 | In virtue than in vengeance. They being penitent, | In vertue, then in vengeance: they, being penitent, |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.56 | And deeper than did ever plummet sound | And deeper then did euer Plummet sound |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.58.2 | Here enters Ariel before; then Alonso with a frantic | Heere enters Ariel before: Then Alonso with a franticke |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.147 | Than you may call to comfort you, for I | Then you may call to comfort you; for I |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.199 | Let us not burden our remembrances with | Let vs not burthen our remembrances, with |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.227 | These are not natural events. They strengthen | These are not naturall euents, they strengthen |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.243 | And there is in this business more than nature | And there is in this businesse, more then nature |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.268 | Then say if they be true. This misshapen knave, | Then say if they be true: This mishapen knaue; |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.289 | I should have been a sore one, then. | I should haue bin a sore one then. |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.311 | And thence retire me to my Milan, where | And thence retire me to my Millaine, where |
| The Tempest | Tem V.i.318 | That is thy charge. Then to the elements | That is thy charge: Then to the Elements |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.39 | Lives in these touches livelier than life. | Liues in these toutches, liuelier then life. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.41 | The senators of Athens – happy man! | The Senators of Athens, happy men. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.62 | Than to abhor himself – even he drops down | Then to abhorre himselfe; euen hee drops downe |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.82 | Some better than his value – on the moment | Some better then his valew; on the moment |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.95 | More pregnantly than words. Yet you do well | More pregnantly then words. Yet you do well, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.114 | Enter an Old Athenian | Enter an old Athenian. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.124.1 | Than one which holds a trencher. | Then one which holds a Trencher. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.155 | Exeunt Lucilius and Old Athenian | Exit |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.186 | Are they not Athenians? | Are they not Athenians? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.188 | Then I repent not. | Then I repent not. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.194 | To knock out an honest Athenian's brains. | To knocke out an honest Athenians braines. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.222 | Then I lie not. | Then I lye not. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.225 | Then thou liest. Look in thy last work, | Then thou lyest: / Looke in thy last worke, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.i.231 | What wouldst do then, Apemantus? | What wouldst do then Apemantus? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.1.2 | in; Flavius and others attending; and then enter | in: and then, Enter |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.1.3 | Lord Timon, Alcibiades, the States, the Athenian | Lord Timon, the States, the Athenian |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.1.5 | prison. Then comes, dropping after all, Apemantus, | prison. Then comes dropping after all Apemantus |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.4 | Then, as in grateful virtue I am bound | Then, as in gratefull Vertue I am bound |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.19 | Than my fortunes to me. | Then my Fortunes to me. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.34 | I take no heed of thee. Th' art an Athenian, | I take no heede of thee: Th'art an Athenian, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.74 | You had rather be at a breakfast of enemies than | You had rather be at a breakefast of Enemies, then |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.80 | enemies then, that then thou mightst kill 'em – and bid | Enemies then, that then thou might'st kill 'em: & bid |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.91 | to myself than you can with modesty speak in your own | to my selfe, then you can with modestie speake in your owne |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.100 | better or properer can we call our own than the riches of | better or properer can we call our owne, then the riches of |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.159 | When all's spent, he'd be crossed then, an he could. | When all's spent, hee'ld be crost then, and he could: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.177 | Near? Why then, another time I'll hear thee. I | Neere? why then another time Ile heare thee. I |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.203 | Than such that do e'en enemies exceed. | Then such that do e'ne Enemies exceede. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.208 | With more than common thanks I will receive it. | With more then common thankes / I will receyue it. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.244 | too, there would be none left to rail upon thee, and then | too, there would be none left to raile vpon thee, and then |
| Timon of Athens | Tim I.ii.252 | not then. I'll lock thy heaven from thee. | not then. Ile locke thy heauen from thee: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim II.i.8 | Better than he, why, give my horse to Timon, | Better then he; why giue my Horse to Timon. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim II.i.17 | With slight denial, nor then silenced when | With slight deniall; nor then silenc'd, when |
| Timon of Athens | Tim II.ii.20.2 | Of Athens here, my lord. | Of Athens heere, my Lord. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim II.ii.85 | There will little learning die then, that | There will litle Learning dye then that |
| Timon of Athens | Tim II.ii.107 | Do it then, that we may account thee a | Do it then, that we may account thee a |
| Timon of Athens | Tim II.ii.114 | stones more than's artificial one. He is very often like a | stones moe then's artificiall one. Hee is verie often like a |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.i.11 | gentleman of Athens, thy very bountiful good lord and | Gentleman of Athens, thy very bouutifull good Lord and |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.i.55 | It turns in less than two nights? O you gods! | It turnes in lesse then two nights? O you Gods! |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.ii.52 | witness; but I would not, for the wealth of Athens, I | witnesse; but I would not for the wealth of Athens I |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iii.23 | I'd rather than the worth of thrice the sum | I'de rather then the worth of thrice the summe, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.1.3 | of Timon's creditors, waiting for his coming out | Then enter Lucius and Hortensius. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.24 | Timon in this should pay more than he owes; | Timon in this, should pay more then he owes: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.29 | And now ingratitude makes it worse than stealth. | And now Ingratitude, makes it worse then stealth. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.50 | Why then preferred you not your sums and bills | Why then preferr'd you not your summes and Billes |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.52 | Then they could smile and fawn upon his debts, | Then they could smile, and fawne vpon his debts, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.iv.64 | and that's revenge enough. Who can speak broader than | and that's reuenge enough. Who can speake broader, then |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.41 | My lords, then, under favour – pardon me, | My Lords, then vnder fauour, pardon me, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.48 | Abroad? Why then women are more valiant | Abroad? Why then, Women are more valiant |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.50 | And the ass more captain than the lion, | And the Asse, more Captaine then the Lyon? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.51 | The fellow loaden with irons wiser than the judge, | The fellow loaden with Irons, wiser then the Iudge? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.101 | If after two days' shine Athens contain thee, | If after two dayes shine, Athens containe thee, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.107 | I'm worse than mad. I have kept back their foes, | I'm worse then mad: I haue kept backe their Foes |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.v.115 | That I may strike at Athens. I'll cheer up | That I may strike at Athens. Ile cheere vp |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.vi.31 | than we your lordship. | then we your Lordship. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.vi.76 | the gods. Make the meat be beloved more than the man that | the Gods. Make the Meate be beloued, more then the Man that |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.vi.80 | Senators of Athens, together with the common leg of people – | Senators of Athens, together with the common legge of People, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim III.vi.104 | Burn house! Sink Athens! Henceforth hated be | Burne house, sinke Athens, henceforth hated be |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.3 | And fence not Athens. Matrons, turn incontinent. | And fence not Athens. Matrons, turne incontinent, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.9 | Rather than render back, out with your knives | Rather then render backe; out with your Kniues, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.23 | On Athens, ripe for stroke. Thou cold sciatica, | On Athens ripe for stroke. Thou cold Sciatica, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.29 | Sow all th' Athenian bosoms, and their crop | Sowe all th'Athenian bosomes, and their crop |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.36 | Th' unkindest beast more kinder than mankind. | Th'vnkindest Beast, more kinder then Mankinde. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.i.38 | Th' Athenians both within and out that wall. | Th'Athenians both within and out that Wall: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.ii.40 | Who then dares to be half so kind again? | Who then dares to be halfe so kinde agen? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.58 | I know thee too, and more than that I know thee | I know thee too, and more then that I know thee |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.62 | Then what should war be? This fell whore of thine | Then what should warre be? This fell whore of thine, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.63 | Hath in her more destruction than thy sword, | Hath in her more destruction then thy Sword, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.65 | I will not kiss thee; then the rot returns | I will not kisse thee, then the rot returnes |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.69 | But then renew I could not like the moon; | But then renew I could not like the Moone, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.79 | I see them now. Then was a blessed time. | I see them now, then was a blessed time. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.81 | Is this th' Athenian minion whom the world | Is this th'Athenian Minion, whom the world |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.94 | How cursed Athens, mindless of thy worth, | How cursed Athens, mindelesse of thy worth, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.102 | When I have laid proud Athens on a heap – | When I haue laid proud Athens on a heape. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.103.1 | Warrest thou 'gainst Athens? | Warr'st thou 'gainst Athens. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.146 | Your poor thin roofs with burdens of the dead – | Your poore thin Roofes with burthens of the dead, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.150.2 | Well, more gold. What then? | Well, more Gold, what then? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.170 | Strike up the drum towards Athens. Farewell, Timon. | Strike vp the Drum towardes Athens, farewell / Timon: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.201 | 'Tis, then, because thou dost not keep a dog, | 'Tis then, because thou dost not keepe a dogge |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.234 | I love thee better now than e'er I did. | I loue thee better now, then ere I did. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.248 | Worse than the worst, content. | Worse then the worst, Content. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.263 | At duty, more than I could frame employment; | At duty more then I could frame employment; |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.268 | That never knew but better, is some burden. | That neuer knew but better, is some burthen: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.283 | That the whole life of Athens were in this! | That the whole life of Athens were in this, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.289 | What wouldst thou have to Athens? | What would'st thou haue to Athens? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.350 | of Athens is become a forest of beasts. | of Athens, is become / A Forrest of Beasts. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.358 | be welcome. I had rather be a beggar's dog than | be welcome. / I had rather be a Beggers Dogge, / Then |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.379 | Then, Timon, presently prepare thy grave. | Then Timon presently prepare thy graue: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.399 | More things like men! Eat, Timon, and abhor them. | Mo things like men, / Eate Timon, and abhorre then. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.435 | More than you rob. Take wealth and lives together. | Moe then you Rob: Take wealth, and liues together, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.448 | All that you meet are thieves. To Athens go, | All that you meete are Theeues: to Athens go, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.458 | Let us first see peace in Athens. There is | Let vs first see peace in Athens, there is |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.466 | What viler thing upon the earth than friends, | What vilder thing vpon the earth, then Friends, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.471 | Those that would mischief me than those that do! | Those that would mischeefe me, then those that doo. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.477 | Then, if thou grantest th' art a man, I have forgot thee. | Then, if thou grunt'st, th'art a man. / I haue forgot thee. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.479 | Then I know thee not. | Then I know thee not: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.484 | For his undone lord than mine eyes for you. | For his vndone Lord, then mine eyes for you. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.485 | What, dost thou weep? Come nearer. Then I love thee, | What, dost thou weepe? / Come neerer, then I loue thee |
| Timon of Athens | Tim IV.iii.505 | Methinks thou art more honest now than wise. | Me thinkes thou art more honest now, then wise: |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.9 | Then this breaking of his has been but a try for his | Then this breaking of his, / Ha's beene but a Try for his |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.12 | Athens again, and flourish with the highest. Therefore | Athens againe, / And flourish with the highest: / Therefore, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.39 | Then do we sin against our own estate, | Then do we sinne against our owne estate, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.47 | Than where swine feed! | then where Swine feede? |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.79 | Best in all Athens. Th' art indeed the best; | Best in all Athens, th'art indeed the best, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.109 | But where one villain is, then him abandon. | But where one Villaine is, then him abandon. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.118 | It is our part and promise to th' Athenians | It is our part and promise to th'Athenians |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.126 | Look out, and speak to friends. Th' Athenians | Looke out, and speake to Friends: Th'Athenians |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.134 | The senators of Athens greet thee, Timon. | The Senators of Athens, greet thee Timon. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.139 | Entreat thee back to Athens, who have thought | Intreate thee backe to Athens, who haue thought |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.149 | Than their offence can weigh down by the dram – | Then their offence can weigh downe by the Dramme, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.158 | And of our Athens, thine and ours, to take | And of our Athens, thine and ours to take |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.165.1 | Against the walls of Athens. | Against the walles of Athens. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.169 | That Timon cares not. But if he sack fair Athens, | That Timon cares not. But if he sacke faire Athens, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.173 | Then let him know – and tell him Timon speaks it | Then let him know, and tell him Timon speakes it, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.180 | The reverend'st throat in Athens. So I leave you | The reuerends Throat in Athens. So I leaue you |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.206 | Tell Athens, in the sequence of degree | Tell Athens, in the sequence of degree, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.i.212 | Come not to me again, but say to Athens, | Come not to me againe, but say to Athens, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.iii.9 | Before proud Athens he's set down by this, | Before proud Athens hee's set downe by this, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.1.2 | before Athens | before Athens. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.38 | Are not inherited. Then, dear countryman, | Are not inherited, then deere Countryman, |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.40 | Spare thy Athenian cradle and those kin | Spare thy Athenian Cradle, and those Kin |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.46.1 | Than hew to't with thy sword. | Then hew too't, with thy Sword. |
| Timon of Athens | Tim V.iv.54.2 | Then there's my glove. | Then there's my Gloue, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.1.2 | then enter below Saturninus and his followers at one | then enter Saturninus and his Followers at one |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.7 | Then let my father's honours live in me, | Then let my Fathers Honours liue in me, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.12 | Keep then this passage to the Capitol, | Keepe then this passage to the Capitoll: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.1 | Sound drums and trumpets. Then enter two of Titus's | Sound Drummes and Trumpets. And then enter two of Titus |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.2 | sons, Martius and Mutius, then two men bearing a | Sonnes; After them, two men bearing a |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.3 | Coffin covered with black, then two other sons, Lucius | Coffin couered with blacke, then two other Sonnes. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.4 | and Quintus, then Titus Andronicus, and then | After them, Titus Andronicus, and then |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.73.7 | and others as many as can be. Then set down the coffin, | and others, as many as can bee: They set downe the Coffin, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.121 | Draw near them then in being merciful; | Draw neere them then in being mercifull. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.138 | Then, madam, stand resolved; but hope withal | Then Madam stand resolu'd, but hope withall, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.153 | Sound trumpets, and lay the coffin in the tomb | Flourish. Then Sound Trumpets, and lay the Coffins in the Tombe. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.188 | Be candidatus then and put it on, | Be Candidatus then, and put it on, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.191 | Than his that shakes for age and feebleness. | Then his that shakes for age and feeblenesse: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.210 | Rather than rob me of the people's hearts. | Rather then rob me of the peoples harts. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.217 | My faction if thou strengthen with thy friends, | My Faction if thou strengthen with thy Friend? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.231 | Then if you will elect by my advice, | Then if you will elect by my aduise, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.254 | Receive them then, the tribute that I owe, | Receiue them then, the Tribute that I owe, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.272 | Can make you greater than the Queen of Goths. | Can make your Greater then the Queene of Gothes? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.280 | How, sir? Are you in earnest then, my lord? | How sir? Are you in earnest then my Lord? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.295 | My lord, you are unjust, and more than so, | My Lord you are vniust, and more then so, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.376 | Renowned Titus, more than half my soul – | Renowned Titus more then halfe my soule. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.385 | Let not young Mutius then, that was thy joy, | Let not young Mutius then that was thy ioy, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.399 | Is she not then beholden to the man | Is she not then beholding to the man, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.424 | Receive him then to favour, Saturnine, | Receiue him then to fauour Saturnine, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.433 | Then hear me speak indifferently for all, | Then heare me speake indifferently for all: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.442 | Then at my suit look graciously on him; | Then at my sute looke graciously on him, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.448 | Lest then the people, and patricians too, | Least then the people, and Patricians too, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit I.i.452 | Yield at entreats, and then let me alone: | Yeeld at intreats, and then let me alone: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.12 | Then, Aaron, arm thy heart and fit thy thoughts | Then Aaron arme thy hart, and fit thy thoughts, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.17 | Than is Prometheus tied to Caucasus. | Then is Prometheus ti'de to Caucasus. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.65 | What, is Lavinia then become so loose, | What is Lauinia then become so loose, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.72 | I love Lavinia more than all the world. | I loue Lauinia more then all the world. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.86 | Than wots the miller of, and easy it is | Then wots the Miller of, and easie it is |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.89 | Better than he have worn Vulcan's badge. | Better then he haue worne Vulcans badge. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.91 | Then why should he despair that knows to court it | Then why should he dispaire that knowes to court it |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.95 | Why then, it seems some certain snatch or so | Why then it seemes some certaine snatch or so |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.98 | Then should not we be tired with this ado. | Then should not we be tir'd with this adoo: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.100 | To square for this? Would it offend you then | To square for this? Would it offend you then? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.109 | Than this Lavinia, Bassianus' love. | Then this Lauinia, Bassianus loue, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.i.117 | Single you thither then this dainty doe, | Single you thither then this dainty Doe, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.ii.11.1 | Here a cry of hounds and wind horns in a peal; | Winde Hornes. Heere a cry of houndes, and winde hornes in a peale, then |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.ii.11.2 | then enter Saturninus, Tamora, Bassianus, Lavinia, | Enter Saturninus, Tamora, Bassianus, Lauinia, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.ii.18 | Come on then, horse and chariots let us have, | Come on then, horse and Chariots letvs haue, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.41 | Which never hopes more heaven than rests in thee, | Which neuer hopes more heauen, then rests in thee, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.51 | Ah, my sweet Moor, sweeter to me than life! | Ah my sweet Moore: / Sweeter to me then life. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.109 | And then they called me foul adulteress, | And then they call'd me foule Adulteresse, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.123 | First thrash the corn, then after burn the straw. | First thrash the Corne, then after burne the straw: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.172 | What begg'st thou then, fond woman? Let me go! | What beg'st thou then? fond woman let me go? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.175 | O, keep me from their worse-than-killing lust, | Oh keepe me from their worse then killing lust, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.184.2 | Nay then, I'll stop your mouth. | Nay then Ile stop your mouth |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.213 | My heart suspects more than mine eye can see. | My heart suspects more then mine eie can see. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.264 | Then all too late I bring this fatal writ, | Then all too late I bring this fatall writ, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iii.302 | For, by my soul, were there worse end than death, | For by my soule, were there worse end then death, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iv.43 | That could have better sewed than Philomel. | That could haue better sowed then Philomel. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit II.iv.47 | He would not then have touched them for his life. | He would not then haue toucht them for his life. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.18 | Than youthful April shall with all his showers. | Then youthfull Aprill shall with all his showres |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.39 | Yet in some sort they are better than the tribunes, | Yet in some sort they are better then the Tribunes, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.45 | A stone is soft as wax, tribunes, more hard than stones. | A stone is as soft waxe, / Tribunes more hard then stones: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.56 | But me and mine; how happy art thou then | But me and and mine: how happy art thou then, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.62 | Will it consume me? Let me see it then. | Will it consume me? Let me see it then. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.92 | Hath hurt me more than had he killed me dead. | Hath hurt me more, then had he kild me dead: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.102 | Is dear Lavinia, dearer than my soul. | Is deere Lauinia, deerer then my soule. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.111 | When I did name her brothers, then fresh tears | When I did name her brothers, then fresh teares |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.116 | If they did kill thy husband, then be joyful, | If they did kill thy husband then be ioyfull, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.165 | My youth can better spare my blood than you | My youth can better spare my blood then you, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.173 | Then have I kept it to a worthy end. | Then haue I kept it to a worthy end. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.184.1 | Then I'll go fetch an axe. | Then Ile goe fetch an Axe. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.209 | Do then, dear heart, for heaven shall hear our prayers, | Doe then deare heart, for heauen shall heare our prayers, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.216 | Then be my passions bottomless with them. | Then be my passions bottomlesse with them. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.219 | Then into limits could I bind my woes. | Then into limits could I binde my woes: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.226 | Then must my sea be moved with her sighs, | Then must my Sea be moued with her sighes, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.227 | Then must my earth with her continual tears | Then must my earth with her continuall teares, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.231 | Then give me leave, for losers will have leave | Then giue me leaue, for loosers will haue leaue, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.239 | More than remembrance of my father's death. | More then remembrance of my fathers death. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.242 | These miseries are more than may be borne. | These miseries are more then may be borne. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.269 | Then which way shall I find Revenge's cave? | Then which way shall I finde Reuenges Caue? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.i.290 | He loves his pledges dearer than his life. | Heloues his pledges dearer then his life: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.2 | Than will preserve just so much strength in us | Then will preserue iust so much strength in vs |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.4 | Marcus, unknit that sorrow-wreathen knot. | Marcus vnknit that sorrow-wreathen knot: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.11 | Then thus (striking his breast) I thump it down. | Then thus I thumpe it downe. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit III.ii.69 | Then pardon me for reprehending thee, | Then pardon me for reprehending thee, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.13 | Read to her sons than she hath read to thee | Read to her sonnes, then she hath read to thee, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.38 | I think she means that there were more than one | I thinke she meanes that ther was more then one |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.95 | But if you hunt these bear-whelps, then beware: | But if you hunt these Beare-whelpes, then beware |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.105 | And where's our lesson then? Boy, what say you? | And wheres your lesson then. Boy what say you? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.i.127 | Than foemen's marks upon his battered shield, | Then foe-mens markes vpon his batter'd shield, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.33 | Led us to Rome, strangers, and more than so, | Led vs to Rome strangers, and more then so; |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.64.2 | Why then, she is the devil's dam: | Why then she is the Deuils Dam: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.82 | What, must it, nurse? Then let no man but I | What, must it Nurse? Then let no man but I |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.98 | Coal-black is better than another hue, | Cole-blacke is better then another hue, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.131 | Then sit we down and let us all consult. | Then sit we downe and let vs all consult. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.ii.167 | Then let the ladies tattle what they please. | Then let the Ladies tattle what they please. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.13 | Then, when you come to Pluto's region, | Then when you come to Plutoes Region, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.24 | And, kinsmen, then we may go pipe for justice. | And kinsmen then we may goe pipe for iustice. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.49 | Yet wrung with wrongs more than our backs can bear. | Yet wrung with wrongs more then our backe can beare: |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.108 | Then here is a supplication for you, | Then here is a Supplication for you, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.110 | must kneel, then kiss his foot, then deliver up your | must kneele, then kisse his foote, then deliuer vp your |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iii.111 | pigeons, and then look for your reward. I'll be at hand, | Pigeons, and then looke for your reward. Ile be at hand |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.33 | Than prosecute the meanest or the best | Then prosecute the meanest or the best |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.38 | Then is all safe, the anchor in the port. | Then is all safe, the Anchor's in the Port. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.48 | Hanged, by' Lady? Then I have brought up a neck | Hang'd? berLady, then I haue brought vp a neck |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.88 | Then cheer thy spirit; for know thou, Emperor, | Then cheare thy spirit, for know thou Emperour, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.91 | Than baits to fish, or honey-stalks to sheep, | Then baites to fish, or honystalkes to sheepe, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.95 | If Tamora entreat him, then he will, | If Tamora entreat him, then he will, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit IV.iv.113 | Then go incessantly, and plead to him. | Then goe successantly and plead for him. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.i.70 | Swear that he shall, and then I will begin. | Sweare that he shall, and then I will begin. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.48 | And then I'll come and be thy waggoner, | And then Ile come and be thy Waggoner, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.175 | Than hands or tongue, her spotless chastity, | Then Hands or tongue, her spotlesse Chastity, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.193 | For worse than Philomel you used my daughter, | For worse then Philomel you vsd my Daughter, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.194 | And worse than Procne I will be revenged. | And worse then Progne, I will be reueng'd, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.ii.202 | More stern and bloody than the Centaurs' feast. | More sterne and bloody then the Centaures Feast. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.17 | What, hath the firmament more suns than one? | What, hath the Firemament more Suns then one? |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.50 | And have a thousand times more cause than he | And haue a thousand times more cause then he. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.95 | Then, gracious auditory, be it known to you | This Noble Auditory, be it knowne to you, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.126 | Or more than any living man could bear. | Or more then any liuing man could beare. |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.165 | And talk of them when he was dead and gone. | In that respect then, like a louing Childe, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.186 | Ten thousand worse than ever yet I did | Ten thousand worse, then euer yet I did, |
| Titus Andronicus | Tit V.iii.199 | And being dead, let birds on her take pity. | And being so, shall haue like want of pitty. / See Iustice done on Aaron that damn'd Moore, / From whom, our heauy happes had their beginning: / Then afterwards, to Order well the State, / That like Euents, may ne're it Ruinate. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC prologue.3 | Have to the port of Athens sent their ships | Haue to the Port of Athens sent their shippes |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC prologue.6 | Their crownets regal from th' Athenian bay | Their Crownets Regall, from th' Athenian bay |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC prologue.28 | Beginning in the middle; starting thence away | Beginning in the middle: starting thence away, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.9 | But I am weaker than a woman's tear, | But I am weaker then a womans teare; |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.10 | Tamer than sleep, fonder than ignorance, | Tamer then sleepe, fonder then ignorance; |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.11 | Less valiant than the virgin in the night, | Lesse valiant then the Virgin in the night, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.30 | Doth lesser blench at sufferance than I do. | Doth lesser blench at sufferance, then I doe: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.33 | So, traitor! – ‘ when she comes ’? – when is she thence? | So (Traitor) then she comes, when she is thence. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.34 | Well, she looked yesternight fairer than ever | Well: / She look'd yesternight fairer, then euer |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.43 | An her hair were not somewhat darker than | And her haire were not somewhat darker then |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.65 | I speak no more than truth. | I speake no more then truth. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.109 | For womanish it is to be from thence. | For womanish it is to be from thence: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.i.118.2 | Come, go we then together. | Come goe wee then togither. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.67 | Then you say as I say, for I am sure he is not | Then you say as I say, / For I am sure he is not |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.80 | were in her body. No, Hector is not a better man than | were in her body; no, Hector is not a better man then |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.102 | Then Troilus should have too much. If she | Then Troylus should haue too much, if she |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.103 | praised him above, his complexion is higher than his; | prasi'd him aboue, his complexion is higher then his, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.109 | than Paris. | then Paris. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.110 | Then she's a merry Greek indeed. | Then shee's a merry Greeke indeed. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.123 | smiling becomes him better than any man in all | smyling becomes him better then any man in all |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.128 | Why, go to, then: but to prove to you that | Why go to then, but to proue to you that |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.132 | Troilus? Why, he esteems her no more than | Troylus? why he esteemes her no more then |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.233 | bloodied, and his helm more hacked than Hector's, | bloudied, and his Helme more hackt then Hectors, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.245 | be such a man as Troilus than Agamemnon and all | be such a man as Troylus, then Agamemnon, and all |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.248 | man than Troilus. | man then Troylus. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.256 | Ay, a minced man; and then to be baked with | I, a minc'd man, and then to be bak'd with |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.257 | no date in the pie, for then the man's date is out. | no Date in the pye, for then the mans dates out. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.269 | blow – unless it swell past hiding, and then it's past | blow, vnlesse it swell past hiding, and then it's past |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.285 | Than in the glass of Pandar's praise may be. | Then in the glasse of Pandar's praise may be; |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.289 | Men prize the thing ungained more than it is. | Men prize the thing vngain'd, more then it is. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.ii.294 | Then, though my heart's content firm love doth bear, | That though my hearts Contents firme loue doth beare, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.17 | That gave't surmised shape. Why then, you princes, | That gaue't surmised shape. Why then (you Princes) |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.23 | In fortune's love: for then the bold and coward, | In Fortunes loue: for then, the Bold and Coward, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.42 | Like Perseus' horse. Where's then the saucy boat, | Like Perseus Horse. Where's then the sawcy Boate, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.49 | Than by the tiger; but when the splitting wind | Then by the Tyger: But, when the splitting winde |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.51 | And flies fled under shade, why then the thing of courage, | And Flies fled vnder shade, why then / The thing of Courage, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.71 | That matter needless, of importless burden, | That matter needlesse of importlesse burthen |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.72 | Divide thy lips than we are confident | Diuide thy lips; then we are confident |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.103 | Then enterprise is sick. How could communities, | The enterprize is sicke. How could Communities, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.108 | But by degree, stand in authentic place? | (But by Degree) stand in Authentique place? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.112 | Should lift their bosoms higher than the shores, | Should lift their bosomes higher then the Shores, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.119 | Then everything includes itself in power, | Then euery thing includes it selfe in Power, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.172 | And then, forsooth, the faint defects of age | And then (forsooth) the faint defects of Age |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.220 | With surety stronger than Achilles' arm | With surety stronger then Achilles arme, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.253.1 | And then to speak. | And then to speake. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.266 | That holds his honour higher than his ease, | That holds his Honor higher then his ease, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.267 | That seeks his praise more than he fears his peril, | That seekes his praise, more then he feares his perill, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.269 | That loves his mistress more than in confession | That loues his Mistris more then in consession, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.272 | In other arms than hers; to him this challenge: | In other armes then hers: to him this Challenge. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.276 | Than ever Greek did compass in his arms; | Then euer Greeke did compasse in his armes, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.289 | If then one is, or hath, or means to be, | If then one is, or hath, or meanes to be, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.299 | Was fairer than his grandam, and as chaste | Was fayrer then his Grandame, and as chaste |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.355 | In no less working than are swords and bows | In no lesse working, then are Swords and Bowes |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.371 | Than in the pride and salt scorn of his eyes | Then in the pride and salt scorne of his eyes |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.373 | Why then we did our main opinion crush | Why then we did our maine opinion crush |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC I.iii.380 | His crest that prouder than blue Iris bends. | His Crest, that prouder then blew Iris bends. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.6 | the general run then? Were not that a botchy core? | the General run, were not that a botchy core? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.8 | Then there would come some matter from | Then there would come some matter from |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.11 | then. | then. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.14 | Speak, then, thou vinewed'st leaven, speak; I will | Speake then you whinid'st leauen speake, I will |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.17 | but I think thy horse will sooner con an oration than | but I thinke thy Horse wil sooner con an Oration, then |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.43 | hast no more brain than I have in mine elbows; an | hast no more braine then I haue in mine elbows: An |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.i.69 | his brain more than he has beat my bones. I will buy | his Braine more then he has beate my bones: I will buy |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.8 | Though no man lesser fears the Greeks than I | Though no man lesser feares the Greeks then I, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.14 | Than Hector is. The wound of peace is surety, | Then Hector is: the wound of peace is surety, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.42 | Who marvels, then, when Helenus beholds | Who maruels then when Helenus beholds |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.58 | To make the service greater than the god; | To make the seruice greater then the God, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.93 | Richer than sea and land? O, theft most base, | Richer then Sea and Land? O Theft most base! |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.121 | Such and no other than event doth form it, | Such, and no other then euent doth forme it, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.127 | I am no more touched than all Priam's sons; | I am no more touch'd, then all Priams sonnes, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.161 | Where Helen is the subject. Then, I say, | Where Helen is the subiect. Then (I say) |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.171 | Than to make up a free determination | Then to make vp a free determination |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.173 | Have ears more deaf than adders to the voice | Haue eares more deafe then Adders, to the voyce |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.177 | Than wife is to the husband? If this law | Then Wife is to the Husband? If this law |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.184 | If Helen then be wife to Sparta's king, | If Helen then be wife to Sparta's King |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.ii.197 | Than the performance of our heaving spleens, | Then the performance of our heauing spleenes, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.7 | spiteful execrations. Then there's Achilles – a rare | spitefull execrations. Then ther's Achilles, a rare |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.13 | that little little, less than little wit from them that they | that little little lesse then little wit from them that they |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.30 | direction till thy death; then if she that lays thee out | direction till thy death, then if she that laies thee out |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.43 | Thy commander, Achilles. Then tell me, | Thy Commander Achilles, then tell me |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.45 | Thy lord, Thersites. Then tell me, I pray | Thy Lord Thersites: then tell me I pray |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.47 | Thy knower, Patroclus. Then tell me, Patroclus, | Thy knower Patroclus: then tell me Patroclus, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.94 | Then will Ajax lack matter, if he have lost his | Then will Aiax lacke matter, if he haue lost his |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.99 | than their faction; but it was a strong composure a fool | then their faction; but it was a strong counsell that a Foole |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.107 | If anything more than your sport and pleasure | If any thing more then your sport and pleasure, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.124 | Than in the note of judgement; and worthier than himself | Then in the note of iudgement: & worthier then himselfe |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.141 | What is he more than another? | What is he more then another? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.142 | No more than what he thinks he is. | No more then what he thinkes he is. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.144 | better man than I am? | a better man then I am? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC II.iii.187 | Of that we hold an idol more than he? | Of that we hold an Idoll, more then hee? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.132 | Hector, Deiphobus, Helenus, Antenor, and all | Hector, Deiphobus, Helenus, Anthenor, and all |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.149 | Shall more obey than to the edge of steel | Shall more obey then to the edge of Steele, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.151 | Than all the island kings – disarm great Hector. | Then all the Iland Kings, disarme great Hector. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.i.154 | Gives us more palm in beauty than we have, | Giues vs more palme in beautie then we haue: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.34 | My heart beats thicker than a feverous pulse, | My heart beates thicker then a feauorous pulse, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.66 | More dregs than water, if my fears have eyes. | More dregs then water, if my teares haue eyes. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.70 | safer footing than blind reason stumbling without fear: | safe footing, then blinde reason, stumbling without feare: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.78 | enough than for us to undergo any difficulty imposed. | inough, then for vs to vndergoe any difficultie imposed. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.83 | than they are able, and yet reserve an ability that they | then they are able, and yet reserue an ability that they |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.84 | never perform; vowing more than the perfection of | neuer performe: vowing more then the perfection of |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.85 | ten, and discharging less than the tenth part of one. | ten; and discharging lesse then the tenth part of one. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.96 | than Troilus. | then Troylus. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.114 | Why was my Cressid then so hard to win? | Why was my Cressid then so hard to win? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.132 | And shall, albeit sweet music issues thence. | And shall, albeit sweete Musicke issues thence. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.151 | Perchance, my lord, I show more craft than love, | Perchance my Lord, I shew more craft then loue, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.161 | That doth renew swifter than blood decays! | That doth renew swifter then blood decaies: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.166 | How were I then uplifted! But alas, | How were I then vp-lifted! but alas, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.168 | And simpler than the infancy of truth. | And simpler then the infancie of truth. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.ii.179 | As truth's authentic author to be cited, | (As truths authenticke author to be cited) |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.18 | You have a Trojan prisoner, called Antenor, | You haue a Troian prisoner, cal'd Anthenor, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.22 | Whom Troy hath still denied; but this Antenor, | Whom Troy hath still deni'd: but this Anthenor, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.36 | This shall I undertake, and 'tis a burden | This shall I vndertake, and 'tis a burthen |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.54 | Than if not looked on. I will lead the way. | Then if not lookt on. I will lead the way. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.155 | Where one but goes abreast. Keep then the path, | Where one but goes a breast, keepe then the path: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.163 | O'errun and trampled on. Then what they do in present, | Ore-run and trampled on: then what they doe in present, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.164 | Though less than yours in past, must o'ertop yours; | Though lesse then yours in past, must ore-top yours: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.179 | More laud than gilt o'erdusted. | More laud then guilt oredusted. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.181 | Then marvel not, thou great and complete man, | Then maruell not thou great and compleat man, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.184 | Than what stirs not. The cry went once on thee, | Then what not stirs: the cry went out on thee, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.204 | Than breath or pen can give expressure to. | Then breath or pen can giue expressure to: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.208 | To throw down Hector than Polyxena. | To throw downe Hector then Polixena. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.218 | Is not more loathed than an effeminate man | Is not more loth'd, then an effeminate man, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.228.2 | O, then, beware; | O then beware: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.233 | Even then when we sit idly in the sun. | Euen then when we sit idely in the sunne. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC III.iii.312 | tick in a sheep than such a valiant ignorance. | Ticke in a Sheepe, then such a valiant ignorance. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.i.1.2 | at another, Paris, Deiphobus, Antenor, Diomedes the | at another Paris, Diephobus, Anthenor, Diomed the |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.i.39 | For the enfreed Antenor, the fair Cressid. | For the enfreed Anthenor, the faire Cressid: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.i.48.1 | Than Cressid borne from Troy. | Then Cressid borne from Troy. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.2 | Then, sweet my lord, I'll call mine uncle down; | Then sweet my Lord, Ile call mine Vnckle down; |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.6.2 | Good morrow, then. | Good morrow then. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.14 | With wings more momentary-swift than thought. | With wings more momentary, swift then thought: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.18 | And then you would have tarried! – Hark, there's one up. | And then you would haue tarried. Harke, ther's one vp? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.26 | You bring me to do – and then you flout me too. | You bring me to doo----and then you floute me too. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.51 | Is he here, say you? 'Tis more than I know, | Is he here say you? 'tis more then I know, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.54 | Whoa! Nay, then! Come, come, you'll do him | Who, nay then: Come, come, youle doe him |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.62 | The Grecian Diomed, and our Antenor, | The Grecian Diomed, and our Anthenor |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.75 | devil take Antenor! The young prince will go mad: a | diuell take Anthenor; the yong Prince will goe mad: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.76 | plague upon Antenor! I would they had broke's neck! | a plague vpon Anthenor; I would they had brok's necke. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.86 | gentleman! – A plague upon Antenor! | Gentleman: a plague vpon Anthenor. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.ii.90 | gone; thou art changed for Antenor. Thou must to thy | gone; thou art chang'd for Anthenor: thou must to thy |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iii.1.1 | Enter Paris, Troilus, Aeneas, Deiphobus, Antenor, | Enter Paris, Troylus, Aneas, Deiphebus, Anthenor |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iv.25 | More bright in zeal than the devotion which | More bright in zeale, then the deuotion which |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iv.54.1 | I must, then, to the Grecians? | I must then to the Grecians? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.iv.82 | Die I a villain then! | Dye I a villaine then: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.38 | The kiss you take is better than you give; | The kisse you take is better then you giue: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.48.3 | Why, beg then. | Why begge then? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.49 | Why then, for Venus' sake, give me a kiss – | Why then for Venus sake, giue me a kisse: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.52 | Never's my day, and then a kiss of you. | Neuer's my day, and then a kisse of you. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.87 | A maiden battle, then? – O, I perceive you. | A maiden battaile then? O I perceiue you. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.107 | Is more vindicative than jealous love. | Is more vindecatiue then iealous loue. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.119.2 | Why, then will I no more. | Why then will I no more: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.217 | Sir, I foretold you then what would ensue. | Sir, I foretold you then what would ensue, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC IV.v.240 | But there's more in me than thou understand'st. | But there's more in me then thou vnderstand'st. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.i.27 | No! Why art thou then exasperate, thou idle | No? why art thou then exasperate, thou idle, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.i.86 | leers than I will a serpent when he hisses. He will | leeres, then I will a Serpent when he hisses: he will |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.i.91 | word. I will rather leave to see Hector than not to dog | word. I will rather leaue to see Hector, then not to dogge |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.15 | Nay, but do, then, | Nay, but doe then; |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.21 | Nay then – | Nay then. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.58 | But will you, then? | But will you then? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.92 | 'Twas one's that loved me better than you will. | 'Twas one that lou'd me better then you will. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.101.2 | Why then, farewell; | Why then farewell, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.108.1 | Farewell till then. | Farewell till then. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.113 | What error leads must err – O, then conclude, | What errour leads, must erre: O then conclude, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.117.3 | Why stay we then? | Why stay we then? |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.152 | Divides more wider than the sky and earth; | Diuides more wider then the skie and earth: |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.178 | In his descent than shall my prompted sword | In his discent; then shall my prompted sword, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.ii.197 | than he for a commodious drab. Lechery, lechery, still | then he for a commodious drab: Lechery, lechery, still |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.18 | Than spotted livers in the sacrifice. | Then spotted Liuers in the sacrifice. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.28 | Holds honour far more precious-dear than life. | Holds honor farre more precious, deere, then life. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.38 | Which better fits a lion than a man. | Which better fits a Lyon, then a man. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iii.49.2 | Hector, then 'tis wars. | Hector, then 'tis warres. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.iv.14 | Achilles; and now is the cur Ajax prouder than the cur | Achilles. And now is the curre Aiax prouder then the curre |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.v.23 | Before the belching whale; then is he yonder, | Before the belching Whale; then is he yonder, |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.vi.31 | Why then, fly on; I'll hunt thee for thy hide. | Why then flye on, Ile hunt thee for thy hide. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.vii.9.1 | Enter Menelaus and Paris, fighting; then Thersites | Enter Thersites, Menelaus, and Paris. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.x.1.1 | Enter Aeneas, Paris, Antenor, Deiphobus, and soldiers | Enter Aneas, Paris, Anthenor and Deiphobus. |
| Troilus and Cressida | TC V.x.56 | Till then I'll sweat, and seek about for eases, | Till then, Ile sweate, and seeke about for eases; |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.29 | He was a bachelor then. | He was a Batchellor then. |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.32 | And then 'twas fresh in murmur – as you know, | And then 'twas fresh in murmure (as you know |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.37 | That died some twelvemonth since, then leaving her | That dide some tweluemonth since, then leauing her |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.ii.64 | When my tongue blabs, then let mine eyes not see. | When my tongue blabs, then let mine eyes not see. |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iii.9 | Confine! I'll confine myself no finer than I am. | Confine? Ile confine my selfe no finer then I am: |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iii.81 | more wit than a Christian or an ordinary man has; but I | more wit then a Christian, or an ordinary man ha's: but I |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iii.92 | Then hadst thou had an excellent head of hair. | Then hadst thou had an excellent head of haire. |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.22 | Rather than make unprofited return. | Rather then make vnprofited returne, |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.23 | Say I do speak with her, my lord, what then? | Say I do speake with her (my Lord) what then? |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.24 | O, then unfold the passion of my love. | O then, vnfold the passion of my loue, |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.iv.28 | Than in a nuncio's of more grave aspect. | Then in a Nuntio's of more graue aspect. |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.20 | You are resolute, then? | You are resolute then? |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.33 | than a foolish wit.’ God bless thee, lady! | then a foolish wit. God blesse thee Lady. |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.39 | will amend. For give the dry fool drink, then is the fool | wil amend: for giue the dry foole drink, then is the foole |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.80 | ordinary fool that has no more brain than a stone. Look | ordinary foole, that has no more braine then a stone. Looke |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.84 | fools, no better than the fools' zanies. | fooles, no better then the fooles Zanies. |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.171 | I can say little more than I have studied, and that | I can say little more then I haue studied, & that |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.183 | speech in your praise, and then show you the heart of | speech in your praise, and then shew you the heart of |
| Twelfth Night | TN I.v.190 | approach rather to wonder at you than to hear you. If | approach rather to wonder at you, then to heare you. If |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.i.14 | then, Antonio, my name is Sebastian which I called | then Antonio, my name is Sebastian (which I call'd |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.7 | To be up after midnight and to go to bed then is early; | To be vp after midnight, and to go to bed then is early: |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.19 | I had rather than forty shillings I had such a leg, and so | I had rather then forty shillings I had such a legge, and so |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.49 | Then come kiss me, sweet and twenty, | Then come kisse me sweet and twentie: |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.111 | more than a steward? Dost thou think, because thou art | more then a Steward? Dost thou thinke because thou art |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.118 | at anything more than contempt, you would not give | at any thing more then contempt, you would not giue |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iii.123 | man's a-hungry, to challenge him the field and then to | mans a hungrie, to challenge him the field, and then to |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.5 | More than light airs and recollected terms | More then light ayres, and recollected termes |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.27 | She is not worth thee, then. What years, i'faith? | She is not worth thee then. What yeares ifaith? |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.30 | An elder than herself; so wears she to him; | An elder then her selfe, so weares she to him; |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.35.1 | Than women's are. | Then womens are. |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.36 | Then let thy love be younger than thyself, | Then let thy Loue be yonger then thy selfe, |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.68 | I'll pay thy pleasure, then. | Ile pay thy pleasure then. |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.80 | Tell her my love, more noble than the world, | Tell her my loue, more noble then the world |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.91 | You tell her so. Must she not then be answered? | You tel her so: Must she not then be answer'd? |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.iv.116 | Our shows are more than will; for still we prove | Our shewes are more then will: for still we proue |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.27 | exalted respect than anyone else that follows her. What | exalted respect, then any one else that followes her. What |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.51 | And then to have the humour of state; and | And then to haue the humor of state: and |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.68 | then? | then? |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.126 | M! But then there is no consonancy in the | M. But then there is no consonancy in the |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.131 | And then I comes behind. | And then I. comes behind. |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.133 | see more detraction at your heels than fortunes before | see more detraction at your heeles, then Fortunes before |
| Twelfth Night | TN II.v.190 | If you will then see the fruits of the sport, mark | If you will then see the fruites of the sport, mark |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.77 | My legs do better under-stand me, sir, than I | My legges do better vnderstand me sir, then I |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.101 | Would they were blanks rather than filled with me. | Would they were blankes, rather then fill'd with me. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.107.1 | Than music from the spheres. | Then Musicke from the spheares. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.123 | Why, then, methinks 'tis time to smile again. | Why then me thinkes 'tis time to smile agen: |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.126 | To fall before the lion than the wolf! | To fall before the Lion, then the Wolfe? |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.131.2 | Then westward ho! | Then Westward hoe: |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.138 | Then think you right; I am not what I am. | Then thinke you right: I am not what I am. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.140 | Would it be better, madam, than I am? | Would it be better Madam, then I am? |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.i.145 | Than love that would seem hid: love's night is noon. | Then loue that would seeme hid: Loues night, is noone. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.5 | the Count's servingman than ever she bestowed upon | the Counts Seruing-man, then euer she bestow'd vpon |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.20 | should then have accosted her, and with some excellent | should then haue accosted her, and with some excellent |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.31 | Why then, build me thy fortunes upon the basis | Why then build me thy fortunes vpon the basis |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.36 | woman than report of valour. | woman, then report of valour. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.56 | Never trust me then – and by all means stir on | Neuer trust me then: and by all meanes stirre on |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.66 | heathen, a very renegado; for there is no Christian, that | Heathen, a verie Renegatho; for there is no christian that |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.ii.75 | lines than is in the new map with the augmentation of | lynes, then is in the new Mappe, with the augmentation of |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iii.5 | More sharp than filed steel, did spur me forth, | (More sharpe then filed steele) did spurre me forth, |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iii.38.2 | Do not then walk too open. | Do not then walke too open. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.3 | For youth is bought more oft than begged or borrowed. | For youth is bought more oft, then begg'd, or borrow'd. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.66 | man than Sir Toby to look to me! This concurs directly | man then sir Toby to looke to me. This concurres directly |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.104 | I live. My lady would not lose him, for more than I'll | I liue. My Lady would not loose him for more then ile |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.178 | more approbation than ever proof itself would have | more approbation, then euer proofe it selfe would haue |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.265 | had rather go with Sir Priest than Sir Knight; I care not | had rather go with sir Priest, then sir knight: I care not |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.308 | Than you have heard him brag to you he will. | Then you haue heard him brag to you he will. |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.328 | Than what befalls myself. You stand amazed; | Then what befals my selfe: you stand amaz'd, |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.346 | Than lying, vainness, babbling drunkenness, | Then lying, vainnesse, babling drunkennesse, |
| Twelfth Night | TN III.iv.377 | coward than a hare. His dishonesty appears in leaving | coward then a Hare, his dishonesty appeares, in leauing |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.i.42 | What, what! Nay, then, I must have an ounce | What, what? Nay then I must haue an Ounce |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.43 | ignorance, in which thou art more puzzled than the | ignorance, in which thou art more puzel'd then the |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.47 | was never man thus abused. I am no more mad than you | was neuer man thus abus'd, I am no more madde then you |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.89 | But as well? Then you are mad indeed, if you be | But as well: then you are mad indeede, if you be |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.90 | no better in your wits than a fool. | no better in your wits then a foole. |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.ii.112 | lady. It shall advantage thee more than ever the bearing | Lady: it shall aduantage thee more, then euer the bearing |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.iii.4 | Yet 'tis not madness. Where's Antonio, then? | Yet 'tis not madnesse. Where's Anthonio then, |
| Twelfth Night | TN IV.iii.34 | Then lead the way, good father, and heavens so shine | Then lead the way good father, & heauens so shine, |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.21 | why then, the worse for my friends and the better | why then the worse for my friends, and the better |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.133 | More than I love these eyes, more than my life, | More then I loue these eyes, more then my life, |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.134 | More by all mores than e'er I shall love wife. | More by all mores, then ere I shall loue wife. |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.147 | Be that thou know'st thou art, and then thou art | Be that thou know'st thou art, and then thou art |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.157 | Strengthened by interchangement of your rings, | Strengthned by enterchangement of your rings, |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.175 | your help! I had rather than forty pound I were at home. | your helpe, I had rather then forty pound I were at home. |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.191 | othergates than he did. | other gates then he did. |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.197 | Then he's a rogue and a passy-measures pavin. | Then he's a Rogue, and a passy measures panyn: |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.221 | Than these two creatures. Which is Sebastian? | Then these two creatures. Which is Sebastian? |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.287 | Look, then, to be well edified when the fool | Looke then to be well edified, when the Foole |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.332 | You can say none of this. Well, grant it then, | You can say none of this. Well, grant it then, |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.347 | First told me thou wast mad; then, camest in smiling, | First told me thou wast mad; then cam'st in smiling, |
| Twelfth Night | TN V.i.364 | May rather pluck on laughter than revenge, | May rather plucke on laughter then reuenge, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.7 | Than, living dully sluggardized at home, | Then (liuing dully sluggardiz'd at home) |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.24 | For he was more than overshoes in love. | For he was more then ouer-shooes in loue. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.33 | If lost, why then a grievous labour won; | If lost, why then a grieuous labour won; |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.72 | Twenty to one then he is shipped already, | Twenty to one then, he is ship'd already, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.76 | You conclude that my master is a shepherd then, | You conclude that my Master is a Shepheard then, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.79 | Why then, my horns are his horns, whether I wake | Why then my hornes are his hornes, whether I wake |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.i.105 | Nay, sir, less than a pound shall serve me for | Nay Sir, lesse then a pound shall serue me for |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.2 | Wouldst thou then counsel me to fall in love? | Would'st thou then counsaile me to fall in loue? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.21 | Then thus: of many good, I think him best. | Then thus: of many good, I thinke him best. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.48 | To plead for love deserves more fee than hate. | To plead for loue, deserues more fee, then hate. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.72 | Why didst thou stoop then? | Why didst thou stoope then? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.76 | Then let it lie for those that it concerns. | Then let it lye, for those that it concernes. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.85 | Heavy? Belike it hath some burden then? | Heauy? belike it hath some burden then? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.ii.122 | And throw it thence into the raging sea. | And throw it thence into the raging Sea. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG I.iii.24 | Then tell me, whither were I best to send him? | Then tell me, whether were I best to send him? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.2 | Why then, this may be yours, for this is but one. | Why then this may be yours: for this is but one. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.70 | What should I see then? | What should I see then? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.74 | Belike, boy, then you are in love; for last | Belike (boy) then you are in loue, for last |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.i.125 | If it please me, madam, what then? | If it please me, (Madam?) what then? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.ii.6 | Why, then, we'll make exchange; here, take you this. | Why then wee'll make exchange; / Here, take you this. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.ii.15 | That tide will stay me longer than I should. | That tide will stay me longer then I should, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.ii.18 | For truth hath better deeds than words to grace it. | For truth hath better deeds, then words to grace it. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iii.10 | and has no more pity in him than a dog. A Jew | and has no more pitty in him then a dogge: a Iew |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.6 | Of my mistress, then. | Of my Mistresse then. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.21 | Well, then, I'll double your folly. | Well then, Ile double your folly. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.26 | That hath more mind to feed on your blood than | That hath more minde to feed on your bloud, then |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.51 | To any happy messenger from thence. | To any happy messenger from thence. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.81 | Welcome him then according to his worth. | Welcome him then according to his worth: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.91 | Nay, then, he should be blind; and, being blind, | Nay then he should be blind, and being blind |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.149 | Then speak the truth by her; if not divine, | Then speake the truth by her; if not diuine, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.165.2 | Then let her alone. | Then let her alone. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.iv.187 | And then I'll presently attend you. | And then Ile presently attend you. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.15 | How then? Shall he marry her? | How then? shall he marry her? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.19 | Why, then, how stands the matter with them? | Why then, how stands the matter with them? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.33 | The conclusion is, then, that it will. | The conclusion is then, that it will. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.v.39 | Than how? | Then how? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vi.23 | I to myself am dearer than a friend, | I to my selfe am deerer then a friend, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.33 | Then let me go, and hinder not my course. | Then let me goe, and hinder not my course: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.44 | Why then, your ladyship must cut your hair. | Why then your Ladiship must cut your haire. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.48 | Of greater time than I shall show to be. | Of greater time then I shall shew to be. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.62 | If you think so, then stay at home and go not. | If you thinke so, then stay at home, and go not. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG II.vii.64 | Then never dream on infamy, but go. | Then neuer dreame on Infamy, but go: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.19 | Than, by concealing it, heap on your head | Then (by concealing it) heap on your head |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.37 | And thence she cannot be conveyed away. | And thence she cannot be conuay'd away. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.58 | Nay then, no matter; stay with me awhile; | Nay then no matter: stay with me a while, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.78 | Then let her beauty be her wedding-dower; | Then let her beauty be her wedding dowre: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.91 | More than quick words do move a woman's mind. | More then quicke words, doe moue a womans minde. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.110 | Why then, I would resort to her by night. | Why then I would resort to her by night. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.117 | Why then, a ladder, quaintly made of cords, | Why then a Ladder quaintly made of Cords |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.132.2 | Then let me see thy cloak; | Then let me see thy cloake, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.159 | And think my patience, more than thy desert, | And thinke my patience, (more then thy desert) |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.161 | Thank me for this more than for all the favours | Thanke me for this, more then for all the fauors |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.164 | Longer than swiftest expedition | Longer then swiftest expedition |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.170 | And why not death, rather than living torment? | And why not death, rather then liuing torment? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.195 | Who then? His spirit? | Who then? his Spirit? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.197 | What then? | What then? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.207 | Then in dumb silence will I bury mine, | Then in dumbe silence will I bury mine, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.269 | serves for wages. She hath more qualities than a | serues for wages. Shee hath more qualities then a |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.274 | than a jade. Item: She can milk. Look you, a sweet | then a Iade. Item. She can milke, looke you, a sweet |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.280 | news, then, in your paper? | newes then in your paper? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.304 | A special virtue; for then she need not be | A speciall vertue: for then shee neede not be |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.307 | Then may I set the world on wheels, when she | Then may I set the world on wheeles, when she |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.343 | Item: She hath more hair than wit, and more faults | Item, shee hath more haire then wit, and more faults |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.344 | than hairs, and more wealth than faults. | then haires, and more wealth then faults. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.348 | Item: She hath more hair than wit – | Item, she hath more haire then wit. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.349 | More hair than wit? It may be I'll prove it: the | More haire then wit: it may be ile proue it: The |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.351 | than the salt; the hair that covers the wit is more than | then the salt; the haire that couers the wit, is more then |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.353 | And more faults than hairs – | And more faults then haires. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.355 | And more wealth than faults. | And more wealth then faults. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.359 | What then? | What then? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.360 | Why, then will I tell thee – that thy master stays | Why then, will I tell thee, that thy Master staies |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.i.364 | a better man than thee. | a better man then thee. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.ii.20 | Longer than I prove loyal to your grace | Longer then I proue loyall to your Grace, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG III.ii.38 | Then you must undertake to slander him. | Then you must vndertake to slander him. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.i.11 | Then know that I have little wealth to lose; | Then know that I haue little wealth to loose; |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.i.22 | What, were you banished thence? | What, were you banish'd thence? |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.i.44 | Know then that some of us are gentlemen, | Know then, that some of vs are Gentlemen, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.ii.48 | Then to Silvia let us sing | Then to Siluia, let vs sing, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.ii.53 | How now? Are you sadder than you were before? | How now? are you sadder then you were before; |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.ii.113 | Go to thy lady's grave and call hers thence; | Goe to thy Ladies graue and call hers thence, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.13 | If I had not had more wit than he, to take a fault upon | If I had not had more wit then he, to take a fault vpon |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.53 | the hangman boys in the market-place; and then I | the Hangmans boyes in the market place, / And then I |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.117 | Would better fit his chamber than this shadow. | Would better fit his Chamber, then this Shadow. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG IV.iv.146 | She hath been fairer, madam, than she is. | She hath bin fairer (Madam) then she is, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.2 | O, sir, I find her milder than she was; | Oh Sir, I finde her milder then she was, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.10 | Nay then, the wanton lies; my face is black. | Nay then the wanton lyes: my face is blacke. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.14 | For I had rather wink than look on them. | For I had rather winke, then looke on them. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.34 | Why then, | Why then |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.52 | Than for the love of reckless Silvia. | Then for the loue of reck-lesse Siluia. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.54 | Than hate of Eglamour, that goes with her. | Then hate of Eglamoure that goes with her. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.ii.56 | Than hate for Silvia, that is gone for love. | Then hate for Siluia, that is gone for loue. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iii.3 | A thousand more mischances than this one | A thousand more mischances then this one |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.3 | I better brook than flourishing peopled towns. | I better brooke then flourishing peopled Townes: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.24 | A smaller boon than this I cannot beg, | (A smaller boone then this I cannot beg, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.25 | And less than this, I am sure, you cannot give. | And lesse then this, I am sure you cannot giue.) |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.35 | Rather than have false Proteus rescue me. | Rather then haue false Protheus reskue me: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.47 | For whose dear sake thou didst then rend thy faith | For whose deare sake, thou didst then rend thy faith |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.51 | And that's far worse than none; better have none | And that's farre worse then none: better haue none |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.52 | Than plural faith, which is too much by one. | Then plurall faith, which is too much by one: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.77.2 | Then I am paid; | Then I am paid: |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.110 | Women to change their shapes than men their minds. | Women to change their shapes, then men their minds. |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.111 | Than men their minds? 'Tis true. O heaven, were man | Then men their minds? tis true: oh heuen, were man |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.143 | Know, then, I here forget all former griefs, | Know then, I heere forget all former greefes, |
| The Two Gentlemen of Verona | TG V.iv.167 | I warrant you, my lord – more grace than boy. | I warrant you (my Lord) more grace, then Boy. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.1.4 | bearing a wheaten garland; then Theseus between two | bearing a wheaten Garland. Then Theseus betweene two |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.1.6 | then Hippolyta the bride, led by Pirithous, and another | Then Hipolita the Bride, lead by Theseus, and another |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.1.9 | then Artesius and attendants | The Song, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.63 | Not Juno's mantle fairer then your tresses, | Not Iunos Mantle fairer then your Tresses, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.65 | Was then nor threshed nor blasted; Fortune at you | Was then nor threashd, nor blasted; Fortune at you |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.67 | Then weaker than your eyes – laid by his club; | (Then weaker than your eies) laide by his Club, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.88 | Then ever he had on thee, who owest his strength | Then ever he had on thee, who ow'st his strength, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.98 | Then a dove's motion when the head's plucked off; | Then a Doves motion, when the head's pluckt off: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.132 | Will longer last and be more costly than | Will long last, and be more costly then, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.136 | Than others' laboured meditance, your premeditating | Then others laboured meditance: your premeditating |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.137 | More than their actions. But O Jove, your actions, | More then their actions: But oh Iove, your actions |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.153 | Then, bootless toil must recompense itself | Then, booteles toyle must recompence it selfe, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.172 | Greater than any war; it more imports me | Greater then any was; it more imports me |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.173 | Than all the actions that I have foregone | Then all the actions that I have foregone, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.185 | Thou shalt remember nothing more than what | Thou shalt remember nothing more, then what |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.i.223 | Budge not from Athens. We shall be returning | Boudge not from Athens; We shall be returning |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.ii.1 | Dear Palamon, dearer in love than blood | Deere Palamon, deerer in love then Blood |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.ii.19 | By peace for whom he fought; who then shall offer | By peace for whom he fought, who then shall offer |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.ii.26.1 | Than strife or war could be. | Then strife, or war could be. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.22 | The brine they wept at killing 'em; then if | The brine, they wept at killing 'em; Then if |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.25 | As I pursue this war, which shall be then | As I pursue this war, which shall be then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.53 | Which then looked pale at parting – when our count | (which then lookt pale at parting) when our count |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.65 | Was then of me approved, what not, condemned, | Was then of me approov'd, what not condemd |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.67 | And put between my breasts – O, then but beginning | And put betweene my breasts, oh (then but beginning |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.82.1 | More than in sex dividual. | More then in sex individuall. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.89 | Than I will trust a sickly appetite | Then I will trust a sickely appetite, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iii.95 | That we, more than his Pirithous, possess | That we, more then his Pirothous, possesse |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.1.1.1 | Cornets. A battle struck within; then a retreat. | Cornets. A Battaile strooke withim: Then a Retrait: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.1.2 | Flourish. Then enter Theseus, victor, with Herald and | Florish. Then Enter Theseus (victor) the three Queenes meete him, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.8 | With treble ceremony; rather than a gap | With treble Ceremonie, rather then a gap |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.28.2 | Then like men use 'em. | Then like men use'em |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.32 | Rather than niggard, waste; their lives concern us | Rather then niggard wast, their lives concerne us, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.33 | Much more than Thebes is worth. Rather than have 'em | Much more then Thebs is worth, rather then have 'em |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.37 | Prisoners to us then death. Bear 'em speedily | Prisoners to us, then death; Beare 'em speedily |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK I.iv.49 | To Athens 'fore our army. | To Athens for our Army. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.5 | I am given out to be better lined than it can appear to | I am given out to be better lyn'd / Then it can appeare, to |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.10 | Sir, I demand no more than your own offer, and | Sir I demaund no more then your owne offer, / And |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.38 | their captivity than I of ruling Athens; they eat well, | their / Captivity, then I of ruling Athens: they eate / Well, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.66 | Like tall ships under sail; then start amongst 'em | Like tall Ships under saile: then start among'st 'em |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.167.1 | Better than we do, Arcite? | Better then we doe Arcite? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.195 | Rude and impatient, then, like chastity, | Rude and impatient, then, like Chastity |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.207.2 | Well, agree then. | Well, agree then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.213.1 | You love her, then? | You love her then? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.245.2 | Why then would you deal so cunningly, | Why then would you deale so cunningly, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.267 | Thou art baser in it than a cutpurse. | Thou art baser in it then a Cutpurse; |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.299.1 | And then I am sure she would love me. | And then I am sure she would love me: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.309 | And if he lose her then, he's a cold coward. | And if he lose her then, he's a cold Coward; |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.325.2 | Then I am resolved, I will not go. | Then I am resolud, I will not goe. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.i.326 | I must constrain you then; and for you are dangerous, | I must constraine you then: and for you are dangerous |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.27 | Why, then, have with ye, boys; 'tis but a chiding. | Why then have with ye Boyes; Tis but a chiding, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.46.2 | All the boys in Athens | All the Boyes in Athens |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.55 | We'll see the sports, then every man to's tackle; | Weele see the sports, then every man to's Tackle: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.ii.78 | Swifter than wind upon a field of corn, | Swifter, then winde upon a feild of Corne |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iii.14 | To a young handsome man. Then I loved him, | To a yong hansom Man; Then I lov'd him, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iii.23 | He bows his noble body, then salutes me, thus: | He bowes his noble body, then salutes me, thus: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iii.31 | To set him free? What says the law then? Thus much | To set him free? what saies the law then? Thus much |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iv.9 | Sure is a happy sire, then. What proves you? | Sure is a happy Sire then: what prooves you? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.iv.48 | I like him better, prince; I shall not then | I like him better (Prince) I shall not then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.v.14 | Find me, and then condemn me for't, some wenches, | Finde me, and then condemne me for't; some wenches, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK II.v.36 | Will be all o'er the prison; I am then | Will be all ore the prison: I am then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.3 | They owe bloomed May, and the Athenians pay it | They owe bloomd May, and the Athenians pay it |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.5 | Fresher than May, sweeter | Fresher then May, sweeter |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.6 | Than her gold buttons on the boughs, or all | Then hir gold Buttons on the bowes, or all |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.7 | Th' enamelled knacks o'th' mead or garden – yea, | Th'enamelld knackes o'th Meade, or garden, yea |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.68 | And then they fight like compelled bears, would fly | And then they fight like compelld Beares, would fly |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.74 | Of one meal lend me. Come before me then, | Of one meale lend me; Come before me then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.78 | If then thou carry't; and brave souls in shades | If then thou carry't, and brave soules in shades |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.96.1 | More than my sword's edge on't. | More then my Swords edge ont. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.118.2 | Nay, then – | Nay then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.i.121 | That strengthens what it looks on; there you have | That strengthens what it lookes on, there |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.ii.9 | I cannot hallow; if I whooped, what then? | I cannot hallow: if I whoop'd; what then? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.ii.19 | And then they fed on him; so much for that. | And then they feed on him: So much for that, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.ii.20 | Be bold to ring the bell. How stand I then? | Be bold to ring the Bell; how stand I then? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.7 | I know you are faint; then I'll talk further with you. | I know you are faint, then ile talke further with you. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.13.2 | Pray sit down then, and let me entreat you, | Pray sit downe then, and let me entreate you |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.23.2 | Yes, for them | Yes, for then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iii.46.2 | Then I'll leave you; | Then Ile leave you: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.iv.13 | News from all parts o'th' world; then would I make | Newes from all parts o'th world, then would I make |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.10 | And ‘ Then let be,’ and no man understand me? | and then let be, and no man understand mee, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.16 | And then cries ‘ Rare!’, and I go forward; at length | and then cries rare, and I goe forward, at length |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.17 | I fling my cap up – mark there! – then do you, | I fling my Cap up; marke there; then do you |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.30 | And now and then a favour and a frisk. | And now and then a fauour, and a friske. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.32.2 | Couple then, | Couple then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.126 | That seek out silent hanging; then mine host | That seeke out silent hanging: Then mine Host |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.v.130 | Then the beest-eating clown, and next the fool, | Then the beast eating Clowne, and next the foole, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.24.2 | Then I shall quit you. | Then I shall quit you. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.26 | More than a mistress to me; no more anger, | More then a Mistris to me, no more anger |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.29 | And both upon our guards, then let our fury, | And both upon our guards, then let our fury |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.31 | And then to whom the birthright of this beauty | And then to whom the birthright of this Beauty |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.50 | Then as I am an honest man and love, | Then as I am an honest man and love, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.52.2 | That's mine then. | That's mine then, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.89.1 | Stand off then. | Stand off then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.93 | They bow several ways, then advance and stand | They bow severall wayes: then advance and stand. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.107 | They fight. Then horns sound within; they stand | Fight. Hornes within: they stand. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.115 | For my contempt; then all the world will scorn us, | For my contempt; Then all the world will scorne us, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.125 | I fear less than my fortune. Know, weak cousin, | I feare lesse then my fortune: know weake Cosen |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.127.2 | Then come what can come, | Then come, what can come |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.156.1 | Then take my life; I'll woo thee to't. | Then take my life, Ile wooe thee too't. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.157.1 | What more than man is this! | What more then man is this! |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.182 | More mercy than you found, sir, your offences | More mercy then you found, Sir, your offenses |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.183 | Being no more than his. None here speak for 'em; | Being no more then his: None here speake for 'em |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.201.2 | Nay, then I'll in too; | Nay then Ile in too: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.218 | Safer than banishment; can these two live, | Safer then banishment: Can these two live |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.222 | In public question with their swords. Be wise then, | In publique question with their Swords; Be wise then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.225 | Better they fall by th' law than one another. | Better they fall by 'th law, then one another. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.258 | O all ye gods, despise me then. Thy banishment | O all ye gods dispise me then: Thy Banishment |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.264.2 | He's a villain, then. | H'es a villaine then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.281.1 | Must die then. | Must dye then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.285.2 | Make choice then. | Make choice then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK III.vi.302.2 | Come, shake hands again then, | Come shake hands againe then, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.59 | A boy or woman. I then left my angle | A boy or woman. I then left my angle |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.63 | And listened to the words she sung, for then, | And listned to the words she song, for then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.71 | And what shall I do then? I'll bring a bevy, | And what shall I doe then? Ile bring a beavy, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.76 | And beg his pardon.’ Then she talked of you, sir; | And beg his pardon; Then she talk'd of you Sir; |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.79 | And see the house made handsome. Then she sung | And see the house made handsome, then she sung |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.92 | And then she wept, and sung again, and sighed, | And then she wept, and sung againe, and sigh'd, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.119 | By no mean cross her; she is then distempered | By no meane crosse her, she is then distemperd |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.i.120.1 | Far worse than now she shows. | For worse then now she showes. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.21 | Smoother than Pelops' shoulder! Fame and honour, | Smoother then Pelops Shoulder? Fame and honour |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.74 | Than these they have brought – if we judge by the outside – | Then these they have brought, (if we judge by the outside) |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.94 | He's somewhat bigger than the knight he spoke of, | Hee's somewhat bigger, then the Knight he spoke of, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.ii.100 | And when he's angry, then a settled valour, | And when he's angry, then a setled valour |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.2 | than at other some, is it not? | Then at other some, is it not? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.12 | ‘ down-a, down-a,’ and penned by no worse man than | downe / A downe a, and pend by no worse man, then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.15 | Dido see Palamon, and then will she be out of love with | Dido see Palamon, and Then will she be out of love with |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.21 | or no ferry; then if it be your chance to come where the | Or no ferry: then if it be your chance to come where / The |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.25 | pick flowers with Proserpine. Then will I make Palamon | picke flowers with Proserpine, then will I make / Palamon |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.26 | a nosegay; then let him mark me – then – | a Nosegay, then let him marke me,---then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.54 | then howls; th' other curses a suing fellow and her | then howles; th' other curses a suing fellow and her |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.60 | Alas, what then? | Alas, what then? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK IV.iii.74 | seem to steal in than be permitted; take upon you, | seeme to steale in, then be permitted; take / Vpon you |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.24 | Though parcel of myself. Then from this gather | Though parcell of my selfe: Then from this gather |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.45 | The queen of flowers. Our intercession, then, | The Queene of Flowers: our intercession then |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.49.1 | They prostrate themselves, then kneel before the altar | They kneele. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.72 | Victory too. Then blend your spirits with mine, | Victory too, then blend your spirits with mine, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.77.1 | Here they prostrate themselves, then kneel as formerly | Here they kneele as formerly. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.91 | Addest flames hotter than his; the heavenly fires | Add'st flames, hotter then his the heavenly fyres |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.97 | Than lead itself, stings more than nettles. | Then Lead it selfe, stings more than Nettles; |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.126 | Truer than I. O then, most soft sweet goddess, | Truer then I. O then most soft sweet goddesse |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.130.2 | fall again upon their faces, then on their knees | fall againe upon their faces, then on their knees. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.i.137.7 | aloof, she sets fire to it. Then they curtsy and kneel | a loofe, she sets fire to it, then they curtsey and kneele. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.8.2 | Then she told me | Then she told me |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.12.4 | 'Twas very ill done, then; | Twas very ill done then, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.21 | Cure her first this way, then if she will be honest, | Cure her first this way, then if shee will be honest, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.84.2 | We'll to bed then. | Wee'l to bed then. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.106.1 | And then we'll play at cards. | And then weele play at Cardes. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.ii.108.1 | And then we'll sleep together. | And then wee'l sleepe together. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.3 | Than this decision. Every blow that falls | Then this decision ev'ry; blow that falls |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.6 | A bell than blade. I will stay here. | A Bell, then blade: I will stay here, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.34.2 | Well, well, then, at your pleasure. | Well, well then, at your pleasure, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.66.1 | Than minister to such harm! | Then minister to such harme, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.68 | Then he has won. 'Twas ever likely; | Then he has won: Twas ever likely, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.98 | No more be hid in him than fire in flax, | No more be hid in him, then fire in flax, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.99 | Than humble banks can go to law with waters | Then humble banckes can goe to law with waters, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.126 | Anon the other, then again the first, | Anon the other, then againe the first, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iii.143 | A life more worthy from him than all women, | A life more worthy from him, then all women; |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.35.1 | Than I can quite or speak of. | Then I can quight or speake of. |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.48.2 | List then. Your cousin, | List then: your Cosen |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.55 | Trotting the stones of Athens, which the calkins | Trotting the stones of Athens, which the Calkins |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.56 | Did rather tell than trample, for the horse | Did rather tell, then trample; for the horse |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.71 | Than any jot obeys; seeks all foul means | Then any jot obaies; seekes all foule meanes |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.78 | That Arcite's legs, being higher than his head, | That Arcites leggs being higher then his head |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.80 | Even then fell off his head; and presently | Even then fell off his head: and presently |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.103 | He did it well; your day is lengthened, and | He did it well: your day is lengthned, and, |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK V.iv.118 | Even then proclaimed your fancy; he restored her | Even then proclaimd your fancie: He restord her |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK epilogue.5 | Then it goes hard, I see. He that has | Then it goes hard I see; He that has |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK epilogue.6 | Loved a young handsome wench, then, show his face – | Lov'd a yong hansome wench then, show his face: |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK epilogue.10 | Have at the worst can come, then! Now, what say ye? | Have at the worst can come, then; Now what say ye? |
| The Two Noble Kinsmen | TNK prologue.21 | Than Robin Hood!’ This is the fear we bring; | Then Robin Hood? This is the feare we bring; |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.i.23 | and there rooted betwixt them then such an affection, | and there rooted betwixt them then such an affection, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.3 | Without a burden. Time as long again | Without a Burthen: Time as long againe |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.16.1 | Than you can put us to't. | Then you can put vs to't. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.18 | We'll part the time between's then; and in that | Wee'le part the time betweene's then: and in that |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.35 | But let him say so, then, and let him go; | But let him say so then, and let him goe; |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.56.2 | Your guest, then, madam: | Your Guest then, Madame: |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.59.1 | Than you to punish. | Then you to punish. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.599.2 | Not your gaoler, then, | Not your Gaoler then, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.62.1 | You were pretty lordings then? | You were pretty Lordings then? |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.77 | Temptations have since then been born to's: for | Temptations haue since then been borne to's: for |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.79 | Your precious self had then not crossed the eyes | Your precious selfe had then not cross'd the eyes |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.104 | And clap thyself my love: then didst thou utter | A clap thy selfe, my Loue; then didst thou vtter, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.117 | As in a looking-glass; and then to sigh, as 'twere | As in a Looking-Glasse; and then to sigh, as 'twere |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.142 | And fellow'st nothing. Then 'tis very credent | And fellow'st nothing. Then 'tis very credent, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.159 | How like, methought, I then was to this kernel, | How like (me thought) I then was to this Kernell, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.167 | Now my sworn friend, and then mine enemy; | Now my sworne Friend, and then mine Enemy; |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.225 | More than the common blocks. Not noted, is't, | More then the common Blocks. Not noted, is't, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.266 | By its own visage; if I then deny it, | By it's owne visage; if I then deny it, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.269 | Is thicker than a cuckold's horn – or heard – | Is thicker then a Cuckolds Horne) or heard? |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.275 | To have nor eyes, nor ears, nor thought – then say | To haue nor Eyes, nor Eares, nor Thought, then say |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.283 | Than this; which to reiterate were sin | Then this; which to reiterate, were sin |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.293 | Why, then the world and all that's in't is nothing; | Why then the World, and all that's in't, is nothing, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.343 | Go then; and, with a countenance as clear | Goe then; and with a countenance as cleare |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.393 | Our gentry than our parents' noble names, | Our Gentry, then our Parents Noble Names, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.417.2 | O, then my best blood turn | Oh then, my best blood turne |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.420 | Turn then my freshest reputation to | Turne then my freshest Reputation to |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.423 | Nay, hated too, worse than the great'st infection | Nay hated too, worse then the great'st Infection |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.433 | Avoid what's grown than question how 'tis born. | Auoid what's growne, then question how 'tis borne. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT I.ii.445 | Than one condemned by the King's own mouth, thereon | Then one condemnd by the Kings owne mouth: / Thereon |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.18 | One of these days; and then you'd wanton with us, | One of these dayes, and then youl'd wanton with vs, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.29.2 | Nay, come sit down; then on. | Nay, come sit downe: then on. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.31.2 | Come on, then, | Come on then, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.54 | Which often hath no less prevailed than so | Which often hath no lesse preuail'd, then so, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.99 | You scarce can right me throughly then to say | You scarce can right me throughly, then, to say |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.112 | Worse than tears drown. Beseech you all, my lords, | Worse then Teares drowne: 'beseech you all (my Lords) |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.120 | Has deserved prison, then abound in tears | Ha's deseru'd Prison, then abound in Teares, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.136 | Than when I feel and see her no farther trust her: | Then when I feele, and see her, no farther trust her: |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.149 | And I had rather glib myself than they | And I had rather glib my selfe, then they |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.158 | I had rather you did lack than I, my lord, | I had rather you did lacke then I (my Lord) |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.160 | To have her honour true than your suspicion, | To haue her Honor true, then your suspition |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.i.190 | Than what I know, yet shall the oracle | Then what I know, yet shall the Oracle |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.ii.3.1 | What dost thou then in prison? | What dost thou then in prison? |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.ii.6.2 | Pray you, then, | Pray you then, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.ii.60 | By law and process of great Nature thence | By Law and processe of great Nature, thence |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.29 | Than the Queen's life? A gracious, innocent soul, | Then the Queenes life? A gracious innocent soule, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.30.1 | More free than he is jealous. | More free, then he is iealous. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.57 | Than such as most seem yours – I say, I come | Then such as most seeme yours. I say, I come |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.71 | Than you are mad; which is enough, I'll warrant, | Then you are mad: which is enough, Ile warrant |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.80 | So I would you did: then 'twere past all doubt | So I would you did: then 'twere past all dout |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.86 | Whose sting is sharper than the sword's; and will not – | Whose sting is sharper then the Swords; and will not |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.118 | Than your own weak-hinged fancy – something savours | Then your owne weake-hindg'd Fancy) something sauors |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.156 | Than curse it then. But be it: let it live. | Then curse it then. But be it: let it liue. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.189 | In more than this deed does require! And blessing | In more then this deed do's require; and Blessing |
| The Winter's Tale | WT II.iii.205 | My heart will be a burden to me. Leave me, | My heart will be a burthen to me. Leaue me, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.i.21 | Even then will rush to knowledge. Go: fresh horses! | Euen then will rush to knowledge. Goe: fresh Horses, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.29 | I doubt not then but innocence shall make | I doubt not then, but Innocence shall make |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.35 | Than history can pattern, though devised | Then Historie can patterne, though deuis'd, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.56.1 | Than to perform it first. | Then to performe it first. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.58.2 | More than mistress of | More then Mistresse of, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.75 | Wotting no more than I, are ignorant. | (Wotting no more then I) are ignorant. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.85 | Which to deny concerns more than avails; for as | Which to deny, concernes more then auailes: for as |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.88 | More criminal in thee than it – so thou | More criminall in thee, then it) so thou |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.90.1 | Look for no less than death. | Looke for no lesse then death. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.125 | Been both at Delphos, and from thence have brought | Been both at Delphos, and from thence haue brought |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.127 | Of great Apollo's priest; and that since then | Of great Apollo's Priest; and that since then, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.168 | No richer than his honour. How he glisters | No richer then his Honor: How he glisters |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.181 | And then run mad indeed, stark mad! For all | And then run mad indeed: starke-mad: for all |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.207 | Than all thy woes can stir. Therefore betake thee | Then all thy woes can stirre: therefore betake thee |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.ii.232 | Than to be pitied of thee. Prithee, bring me | Then to be pittied of thee. Prethee bring me |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.1 | Thou art perfect, then, our ship hath touched upon | Thou art perfect then, our ship hath toucht vpon |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.65 | which I fear the wolf will sooner find than the master. If | which I feare the Wolfe will sooner finde then the Maister; if |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.73 | behind-door-work. They were warmer that got this than | behinde-doore worke: they were warmer that got this, then |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.92 | And then for the land-service: to see how the bear tore | And then for the Land-seruice, to see how the Beare tore |
| The Winter's Tale | WT III.iii.98 | mocked him, both roaring louder than the sea or weather. | mock'd him, both roaring lowder then the sea, or weather. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.13 | have had thee than thus to want thee. Thou, having | haue had thee, then thus to want thee, thou hauing |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.26 | are no less unhappy, their issue not being gracious, than | are no lesse vnhappy, their issue, not being gracious, then |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.32 | court, and is less frequent to his princely exercises than | Court, and is lesse frequent to his Princely exercises then |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.ii.43 | more than can be thought to begin from such a cottage. | more, then can be thought to begin from such a cottage |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.3 | Why, then comes in the sweet o'the year, | Why then comes in the sweet o'the yeere, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.18 | I then do most go right. | I then do most go right. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.21 | Then my account I well may give, | Then my account I well may giue, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.52 | rags; and then, death, death! | ragges: and then, death, death. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.54 | to lay on thee, rather than have these off. | to lay on thee, rather then haue these off. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.56 | more than the stripes I have received, which are mighty | more then the stripes I haue receiued, which are mightie |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.92 | He hath been since an ape-bearer; then a process-server, | he hath bene since an Ape-bearer, then a Processe-seruer |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.93 | a bailiff; then he compassed a motion of the Prodigal | (a Bayliffe) then hee compast a Motion of the Prodigall |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.108 | Sweet sir, much better than I was: I can | Sweet sir, much better then I was: I can |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iii.113 | Then fare thee well. I must go buy spices for our | Then fartheewell, I must go buy Spices for our |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.35.1 | Burn hotter than my faith. | Burne hotter then my Faith. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.39 | Which then will speak: that you must change this purpose | Which then will speake, that you must change this purpose, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.98 | Then make your garden rich in gillyvors, | Then make you Garden rich in Gilly' vors, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.101 | No more than, were I painted, I would wish | No more then were I painted, I would wish |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.121 | But sweeter than the lids of Juno's eyes | But sweeter then the lids of Iuno's eyes, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.158 | But smacks of something greater than herself, | But smackes of something greater then her selfe, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.186 | several tunes faster than you'll tell money; he utters | seuerall Tunes, faster then you'l tell money: hee vtters |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.196 | which is strange; with such delicate burdens of dildos | (which is strange,) with such delicate burthens of Dildo's |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.207 | points more than all the lawyers in Bohemia can | Points, more then all the Lawyers in Bohemia, can |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.218 | than you'd think, sister. | then youl'd thinke (Sister.) |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.237 | He hath promised you more than that, or there | He hath promis'd you more then that, or there |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.259 | for then we are sure they are true. | for then we are sure they are true. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.262 | at a burden, and how she longed to eat adders' heads | at a burthen, and how she long'd to eate Adders heads, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.282 | than my pack will hold. | then my packe will hold. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.306 | Then whither go'st? Say, whither? | Then whether goest? Say whether? |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.368 | Than he, and men; the earth, the heavens, and all: | Then he, and men: the earth, the heauens, and all; |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.372 | More than was ever man's, I would not prize them | More then was euer mans, I would not prize them |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.385 | I shall have more than you can dream of yet; | I shall haue more then you can dreame of yet, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.386 | Enough then for your wonder. But come on: | Enough then for your wonder: but come-on, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.401.1 | Than most have of his age. | Then most haue of his age. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.423 | More homely than thy state. – For thee, fond boy, | More homely then thy state. For thee (fond boy) |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.428 | Far than Deucalion off. Mark thou my words! | Farre then Deucalion off: (marke thou my words) |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.468 | Then till the fury of his highness settle | Then till the fury of his Highnesse settle |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.474 | The violation of my faith; and then | The violation of my faith, and then |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.532 | That I may call thee something more than man, | That I may call thee something more then man, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.538.2 | Then list to me. | Then list to me: |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.551.1 | Faster than thought or time. | Faster then Thought, or Time. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.563 | Than a wild dedication of yourselves | Then a wild dedication of your selues |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.687 | Go to, then. | Goe too then. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.699 | could have been to him; and then your blood had been | could haue beene to him, and then your Blood had beene |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.780 | then, 'nointed over with honey, set on the head of a | then 'noynted ouer with Honey, set on the head of a |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.781 | wasp's nest; then stand till he be three-quarters and a | Waspes Nest, then stand till he be three quarters and a |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.782 | dram dead; then recovered again with aqua-vitae or | dram dead: then recouer'd againe with Aquavite, or |
| The Winter's Tale | WT IV.iv.783 | some other hot infusion; then, raw as he is, and in the | some other hot Infusion: then, raw as he is (and in the |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.4 | More penitence than done trespass. At the last, | More penitence, then done trespas: At the last |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.30 | Than to rejoice the former queen is well? | Then to reioyce the former Queene is well? |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.31 | What holier than, for royalty's repair, | What holyer, then for Royalties repayre, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.52 | Had squared me to thy counsel! Then even now | Had squar'd me to thy councell: then, euen now, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.65 | You chose her; then I'd shriek, that even your ears | You chose her: then Il'd shrieke, that euen your eares |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.72 | Then, good my lords, bear witness to his oath. | Then good my Lords, beare witnesse to his Oath. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.84 | Never till then. | Neuer till then. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.100 | Is colder than that theme – she had not been, | Is colder then that Theame: she had not beene, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.111 | More worth than any man; men that she is | More worth then any Man: Men, that she is |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.133 | You, gracious couple, do. And then I lost – | You (gracious Couple) doe: and then I lost |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.145 | He bade me say so – more than all the sceptres | (He bad me say so) more then all the Scepters, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.158 | Most royal sir, from thence; from him whose daughter | Most Royall Sir, / From thence: from him, whose Daughter |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.159 | His tears proclaimed his, parting with her; thence, | His Teares proclaym'd his parting with her: thence |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.219 | Than I do now. With thought of such affections | Then I doe now: with thought of such Affections, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.i.226.1 | Than what you look on now. | Then what you looke on now. |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.41 | Then have you lost a sight which | Then haue you lost a Sight which |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.50 | become a loss cries ‘ O, thy mother, thy mother!’; then | become a Losse, cryes, Oh, thy Mother, thy Mother: then |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.51 | asks Bohemia forgiveness; then embraces his son-in-law; | askes Bohemia forgiuenesse, then embraces his Sonne-in-Law: |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.52 | then again worries he his daughter with clipping | then againe worryes he his Daughter, with clipping |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.70 | even then lost when it was found. But O, the noble | euen then lost, when it was found. But oh the Noble |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.107 | Who would be thence that has the | Who would be thence, that ha's the |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.116 | then took her to be – who began to be much sea-sick, | then tooke her to be) who began to be much Sea-sick, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.137 | called me brother; and then the two kings called my | call'd mee Brother: and then the two Kings call'd my |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.ii.138 | father brother; and then the Prince my brother and the | Father Brother: and then the Prince (my Brother) and the |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.38 | For being more stone than it? O royal piece! | For being more Stone then it? Oh Royall Peece: |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.44 | I kneel and then implore her blessing. Lady, | I kneele, and then implore her Blessing. Lady, |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.89 | And take you by the hand: but then you'll think – | And take you by the hand: but then you'le thinke |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.95 | You do awake your faith. Then all stand still; | You doe awake your Faith: then, all stand still: |
| The Winter's Tale | WT V.iii.106 | Until you see her die again, for then | Vntill you see her dye againe; for then |